diff options
Diffstat (limited to '586-h')
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/586-h.htm | 8484 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/cover.jpg | bin | 0 -> 115608 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_005_1.png | bin | 0 -> 18904 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_005_2.png | bin | 0 -> 7344 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_009.jpg | bin | 0 -> 46227 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_011_1.jpg | bin | 0 -> 27862 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_011_2.png | bin | 0 -> 22000 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_020.png | bin | 0 -> 32841 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_021_1.jpg | bin | 0 -> 31551 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_021_2.png | bin | 0 -> 21387 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_023.jpg | bin | 0 -> 19197 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_025_1.png | bin | 0 -> 49194 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_025_2.png | bin | 0 -> 21165 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_125.png | bin | 0 -> 19346 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_127_1.png | bin | 0 -> 15421 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_127_2.png | bin | 0 -> 7792 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_129_1.jpg | bin | 0 -> 35483 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_129_2.png | bin | 0 -> 20213 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_132.png | bin | 0 -> 28224 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_133_1.jpg | bin | 0 -> 31629 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_133_2.png | bin | 0 -> 19998 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_182.png | bin | 0 -> 28064 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_183_1.png | bin | 0 -> 15429 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_183_2.png | bin | 0 -> 8529 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_185_1.png | bin | 0 -> 48012 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_185_2.png | bin | 0 -> 20960 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_210.png | bin | 0 -> 41394 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 586-h/images/zill_211.png | bin | 0 -> 51314 bytes |
28 files changed, 8484 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/586-h/586-h.htm b/586-h/586-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..4722d5d --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/586-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,8484 @@ +<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" + "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> +<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> + <head> + <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" /> + <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" /> + <title> + Religio Medici, Hydriotaphia, and the Letter to a Friend, by Sir Thomas Browne&mdash + </title> +<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" /> + <style type="text/css"> + +body { + margin-left: 10%; + margin-right: 10%; +} + + h1,h2,h3 { + text-align: center; /* all headings centered */ + clear: both; + margin-top: 2em; +} + +h1 {margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;} + +p { + margin-top: .51em; + text-align: justify; + margin-bottom: .49em; +} + +.chapter {margin-top: 4em;} + +.toc {text-align: left; max-width: 40em;} + +.sig {margin-left: 4em;} + +.titlepage {page-break-before: always; text-align: center;} + +.p2 {margin-top: 2em;} +.p4 {margin-top: 4em;} + +.small {font-size: small;} +.smaller {font-size: smaller;} +.larger {font-size: larger;} +.large {font-size: large;} +.x-large {font-size: x-large;} + +img.drop-cap +{ + float: left; + margin: 0 0.5em 0 0; +} + +p.drop-cap:first-letter +{ + color: transparent; + visibility: hidden; + margin-left: -0.9em; +} + + + +hr { + width: 33%; + margin-top: 2em; + margin-bottom: 2em; + margin-left: auto; + margin-right: auto; + clear: both; +} + +hr.tb {width: 50%; margin-left: 25%; margin-right: 25%;} +hr.full {width: 95%; margin-left: 2.5%; margin-right: 2.5%;} + + +ul { list-style-type: none; } + +.break +{ + page-break-before: always; +} + +h1,h2 +{ + page-break-before: always; +} + +.nobreak +{ + page-break-before: avoid; +} + +.blockquot { + margin-left: 5%; + margin-right: 10%; +} + +.left {text-align: left;} + +.center {text-align: center;} + +.right {text-align: right;} + +.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} + + + +/* Images */ +.figcenter { + margin: auto; + margin-top: 1em; + text-align: center; +} + + +/* Footnotes */ +.footnotes {page-break-before: always;} + +.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;} + +.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;} + +.fnanchor { + vertical-align: super; + font-size: .8em; + text-decoration: + none; +} + +/* Poetry */ +.poetry-container + { + text-align: center; + margin-top: .51em; + margin-bottom: .49em; + } + +.poetry + { + display: inline-block; + text-align: left; + } + +.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;} + +.poetry .verse + { + text-indent: -3em; + padding-left: 3em; + } + +.poetry .indent4 {text-indent: -1em;} +.poetry .indent6 {text-indent: 0em;} +.poetry .indent8 {text-indent: 1em;} +.poetry .indent14 {text-indent: 4em;} + +/* Transcriber's notes */ +.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA; + color: black; + font-size:smaller; + padding:0.5em; + page-break-before: always; + margin-bottom:5em; + font-family:sans-serif, serif; } + +.line2 {line-height: 200%;} + +@media handheld { + + .poetry + { + display: block; + margin-left: 1.5em; + } + + img.drop-cap + { + display: none; + } + + p.drop-cap:first-letter + { + color: inherit; + visibility: visible; + margin-left: 0; + } + +} + + </style> + </head> +<body> + + +<pre> + +The Project Gutenberg EBook of Religio Medici, Hydriotaphia, and the +Letter to a Friend, by Thomas Browne + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and +most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions +whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms +of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at +www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll +have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using +this ebook. + + + +Title: Religio Medici, Hydriotaphia, and the Letter to a Friend + +Author: Thomas Browne + +Annotator: J. W. Willis Bund + +Release Date: November 11, 2019 [EBook #586] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: UTF-8 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RELIGIO MEDICI *** + + + + +Produced by Henry Flower and Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska + + + + + +</pre> + + +<div class="transnote"> + +<p class="large center">Transcriber's Note</p> + +<p>The printed text contained both footnotes and endnotes. These have been renumbered in continuous series of Roman and Arabic numerals respectively.</p> + +<p>Corrected errata are listed at the <a href="#Transcribers_Note">end</a> of the text.</p> + +<p>The following List of Contents has been added by the transcriber:</p> + +<p class="line2"> + +<!-- Autogenerated TOC. Modify or delete as required. --> + +<a href="#RELIGIO_MEDICI">RELIGIO MEDICI</a><br /> +<a href="#HYDRIOTAPHIA">HYDRIOTAPHIA</a><br /> +<a href="#LETTER_TO_A_FRIEND">A LETTER TO A FRIEND</a><br /> +<a href="#NOTES_TO_THE_RELIGIO_MEDICI">NOTES TO THE RELIGIO MEDICI</a><br /> +<a href="#NOTES_TO_HYDRIOTAPHIA">NOTES TO HYDRIOTAPHIA</a><br /> +<a href="#NOTES_TO_LETTER_TO_A_FRIEND">NOTES TO LETTER TO A FRIEND</a><br /><br /> + +<!-- End Autogenerated TOC. --> + +</p> + +</div> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 600px;"> +<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="600" height="875" alt="cover" /> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 250px;"> +<img src="images/zill_005_1.png" width="250" height="50" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<h1 class="nobreak">RELIGIO MEDICI.</h1> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 80px;"> +<img src="images/zill_005_2.png" width="80" height="18" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +</div> + +<div class="titlepage p4"> + +<p class="center"><span class="x-large"><i>RELIGIO MEDICI</i>,</span><br /> + +HYDRIOTAPHIA, AND THE LETTER TO A FRIEND.</p> + +<p class="p2 center"><span class="small">BY</span><br /> + +<span class="smcap">Sir THOMAS BROWNE, Knt.</span></p> + +<p class="p2 center">WITH AN INTRODUCTION AND NOTES BY<br /> + +J. W. WILLIS BUND, M.A., LL.B.,<br /> + +<span class="small">GONVILLE AND CAIUS COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE,</span><br /> + +<span class="small">OF LINCOLN’S INN, BARRISTER-AT-LAW.</span></p> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 350px;"> +<img src="images/zill_009.jpg" width="350" height="439" alt="portrait of Thomas Browne" /> +</div> + +<p class="p2 center">LONDON:<br /> + +SAMPSON LOW, SON, AND MARSTON,<br /> + +<span class="small">CROWN BUILDINGS, 188 FLEET STREET.</span><br /> + +<span class="small">1869.</span></p> + +</div> + +<div class="p4 chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_011_1.jpg" width="450" height="102" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="INTRODUCTION" id="INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION.</a></h2> + + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_011_2.png" width="70" height="70" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">SIR</span> THOMAS BROWNE (whose works occupy +so prominent a position in the literary history +of the seventeenth century) is an author +who is now little known and less read. This comparative +oblivion to which he has been consigned is +the more remarkable, as, if for nothing else, his +writings deserve to be studied as an example of the +English language in what may be termed a transition +state. The prose of the Elizabethan age was beginning +to pass away and give place to a more inflated +style of writing—a style which, after passing through +various stages of development, culminated in that of +Johnson.</p> + +<p>Browne is one of the best early examples of this +school; his style, to quote Johnson himself, “is +vigorous but rugged, it is learned but pedantick, it +is deep but obscure, it strikes but does not please, it +commands but does not allure. . . . It is a tissue +of many languages, a mixture of heterogeneous words +brought together from distant regions.”</p> + +<p>Yet in spite of this qualified censure, there are +passages in Browne’s works not inferior to any in +the English language; and though his writings may +not be “a well of English undefiled,” yet it is the +very defilements that add to the beauty of the work.</p> + +<p>But it is not only as an example of literary style +that Browne deserves to be studied. The matter of +his works, the grandeur of his ideas, the originality +of his thoughts, the greatness of his charity, amply +make up for the deficiencies (if deficiencies there be) +in his style. An author who combined the wit of +Montaigne with the learning of Erasmus, and of +whom even Hallam could say that “his varied talents +wanted nothing but the controlling supremacy of good +sense to place him in the highest rank of our literature,” +should not be suffered to remain in obscurity.</p> + +<p>A short account of his life will form the best +introduction to his works.</p> + +<p>Sir Thomas Browne was born in London, in the +parish of St Michael le Quern, on the 19th of October +1605. His father was a London merchant, of a good +Cheshire family; and his mother a Sussex lady, +daughter of Mr Paul Garraway of Lewis. His +father died when he was very young, and his mother +marrying again shortly afterwards, Browne was left +to the care of his guardians, one of whom is said to +have defrauded him out of some of his property. He +was educated at Winchester, and afterwards sent to +Oxford, to what is now Pembroke College, where he +took his degree of M.A. in 1629. Thereupon he +commenced for a short time to practise as a physician +in Oxfordshire. But we soon find him growing tired +of this, and accompanying his father-in-law, Sir +Thomas Dutton, on a tour of inspection of the castles +and forts in Ireland. We next hear of Browne in +the south of France, at Montpellier, then a celebrated +school of medicine, where he seems to have studied +some little time. From there he proceeded to Padua, +one of the most famous of the Italian universities, +and noted for the views some of its members +held on the subjects of astronomy and necromancy. +During his residence here, Browne doubtless acquired +some of his peculiar ideas on the science of the +heavens and the black art, and, what was more important, +he learnt to regard the Romanists with that +abundant charity we find throughout his works. +From Padua, Browne went to Leyden, and this sudden +change from a most bigoted Roman Catholic to +a most bigoted Protestant country was not without +its effect on his mind, as can be traced in his book. +Here he took the degree of Doctor of Medicine, and +shortly afterwards returned to England. Soon after +his return, about the year 1635, he published his +“Religio Medici,” his first and greatest work, which +may be fairly regarded as the reflection of the mind +of one who, in spite of a strong intellect and vast +erudition, was still prone to superstition, but having</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse indent8">“Through many cities strayed,</div> + <div class="verse">Their customs, laws, and manners weighed,”</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>had obtained too large views of mankind to become +a bigot.</p> + +<p>After the publication of his book he settled at +Norwich, where he soon had an extensive practice +as a physician. From hence there remains little to +be told of his life. In 1637 he was incorporated +Doctor of Medicine at Oxford; and in 1641 he +married Dorothy the daughter of Edward Mileham, +of Burlingham in Norfolk, and had by her a family +of eleven children.</p> + +<p>In 1646 he published his “Pseudodoxia Epidemica,” +or Enquiries into Vulgar Errors. The discovery +of some Roman urns at Burnham in Norfolk, +led him in 1658 to write his “Hydriotaphia” +(Urn-burial); he also published at the same time +“The Garden of Cyrus, or the Quincunxcial Lozenge +of the Ancients,” a curious work, but far inferior to +his other productions.</p> + +<p>In 1665 he was elected an honorary Fellow of +the College of Physicians, “virtute et literis ornatissimus.”</p> + +<p>Browne had always been a Royalist. In 1643 he +had refused to subscribe to the fund that was then +being raised for regaining Newcastle. He proved a +happy exception to the almost proverbial neglect the +Royalists received from Charles II. in 1671, for when +Charles was at Newmarket, he came over to see Norwich, +and conferred the honour of knighthood on +Browne. His reputation was now very great. Evelyn +paid a visit to Norwich for the express purpose of +seeing him; and at length, on his 76th birthday +(19th October 1682), he died, full of years and +honours.</p> + +<p>It was a striking coincidence that he who in his +Letter to a Friend had said that “in persons who outlive +many years, and when there are no less than +365 days to determine their lives in every year, that +the first day should mark the last, that the tail +of the snake should return into its mouth precisely +at that time, and that they should wind up upon the +day of their nativity, is indeed a remarkable coincidence, +which, though astrology hath taken witty +pains to solve, yet hath it been very wary in making +predictions of it,” should himself die on the day of +his birth.</p> + +<p>Browne was buried in the church of St Peter, +Mancroft, Norwich, where his wife erected to his +memory a mural monument, on which was placed +an English and Latin inscription, setting forth that +he was the author of “Religio Medici,” “Pseudodoxia +Epidemica,” and other learned works “per orbem +notissimus.” Yet his sleep was not to be undisturbed; +his skull was fated to adorn a museum! In 1840, +while some workmen were digging a vault in the +chancel of St Peter’s, they found a coffin with an +inscription—</p> + +<p class="center"> +“Amplissimus Vir<br /> +D<sup>us</sup> Thomas Browne Miles Medicinæ<br /> +D<sup>r</sup> Annis Natus 77 Denatus 19 Die<br /> +Mensis Octobris Anno D<sup>nj</sup> 1682 hoc.<br /> +Loculo indormiens Corporis Spagyrici<br /> +pulvere plumbum in aurum<br /> +convertit.”<br /> +</p> + +<p>The translation of this inscription raised a storm +over his ashes, which Browne would have enjoyed +partaking in, the word <i>spagyricus</i> being an enigma +to scholars. Mr Firth of Norwich (whose translation +seems the best) thus renders the inscription:—</p> + +<div class="blockquot"> + +<p>“The very distinguished man, Sir Thomas Browne, Knight, +Doctor of Medicine, aged 77 years, who died on the 19th of +October, in the year of our Lord 1682, sleeping in this coffin +of lead, by the dust of his alchemic body, transmutes it into +a coffer of gold.”</p></div> + +<p>After Sir Thomas’s death, two collections of his +works were published, one by Archbishop Tenison, +and the other in 1772. They contain most of his +letters, his tracts on various subjects, and his Letter +to a Friend. Various editions of parts of Browne’s +works have from time to time appeared. By far the +best edition of the whole of them is that published +by Simon Wilkin.</p> + +<p>It is upon his “Religio Medici”—the religion of a +physician—that Browne’s fame chiefly rests. It was +his first and most celebrated work, published just after +his return from his travels; it gives us the impressions +made on his mind by the various and opposite +schools he had passed through. He tells us that he +never intended to publish it, but that on its being +surreptitiously printed, he was induced to do so. +In 1643, the first genuine edition appeared, with +“an admonition to such as shall peruse the +observations upon a former corrupt copy of this +book.” The observations here alluded to, were +written by Sir Kenelm Digby, and sent by him to +the Earl of Dorset. They were first printed at the +end of the edition of 1643, and have ever since been +published with the book. Their chief merit consists +in the marvellous rapidity with which they were +written, Sir Kenelm having, as he tells us, bought +the book, read it, and written his observations, in +the course of twenty-four hours!</p> + +<p>The book contains what may be termed an +apology for his belief. He states the reasons on +which he grounds his opinions, and endeavours to +show that, although he had been accused of atheism, +he was in all points a good Christian, and a loyal +member of the Church of England. Each person +must judge for himself of his success; but the effect +it produced on the mind of Johnson may be +noticed. “The opinions of every man,” says he, +“must be learned from himself; concerning his +practice, it is safer to trust to the evidence of others. +When the testimonies concur, no higher degree of +historical certainty can be obtained; and they +apparently concur to prove that Browne was a +zealous adherent to the faith of Christ, that he +lived in obedience to His laws, and died in confidence +of His mercy.”</p> + +<p>The best proof of the excellence of the “Religio” +is to be found in its great success. During the +author’s life, from 1643 to 1681, it passed through +eleven editions. It has been translated into Latin, +Dutch, French, and German, and many of the +translations have passed through several editions. +No less than thirty-three treatises have been written +in imitation of it; and what, to some, will be the +greatest proof of all, it was soon after its publication +placed in the Index Expurgatorius. The best proof +of its liberality of sentiment is in the fact that its +author was claimed at the same time by the Romanists +and Quakers to be a member of their respective +creeds!</p> + +<p>The “Hydriotaphia,” or Urn-burial, is a treatise +on the funeral rites of ancient nations. It was +caused by the discovery of some Roman urns in +Norfolk. Though inferior to the “Religio,” “there is +perhaps none of his works which better exemplifies +his reading or memory.”</p> + +<p>The text of the present edition of the “Religio +Medici” is taken from what is called the eighth +edition, but is in reality the eleventh, published in +London in 1682, the last edition in the author’s lifetime. +The notes are for the most part compiled +from the observations of Sir Kenelm Digby, the +annotation of Mr. Keck, and the very valuable notes +of Simon Wilkin. For the account of the finding +of Sir Thomas Browne’s skull I am indebted to Mr +Friswell’s notice of Sir Thomas in his “Varia.” +The text of the “Hydriotaphia” is taken from the +folio edition of 1686, in the Lincoln’s Inn +library. Some of Browne’s notes to that edition +have been omitted, and most of the references, as +they refer to books which are not likely to be met +with by the general reader.</p> + +<p>The “Letter to a Friend, upon the occasion of the +Death of his intimate Friend,” was first published in +a folio pamphlet in 1690. It was reprinted in his +posthumous works. The concluding reflexions are +the basis of a larger work, “Christian Morals.” I +am not aware of any complete modern edition of it. +The text of the present one is taken from the +original edition of 1690. The pamphlet is in the +British Museum, bound up with a volume of old +poems. It is entitled, “A Letter to a Friend, upon +the occasion of the Death of his intimate Friend. +By the learned Sir Thomas Brown, Knight, Doctor +of Physick, late of Norwich. London: Printed for +Charles Brone, at the Gun, at the West End of St +Paul’s Churchyard, 1690.”</p> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 150px;"> +<img src="images/zill_020.png" width="150" height="150" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_021_1.jpg" width="450" height="100" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="TO_THE_READER" id="TO_THE_READER">TO THE READER.</a></h2> + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_021_2.png" width="70" height="69" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">CERTAINLY</span> that man were greedy of life, who +should desire to live when all the world were +at an end; and he must needs be very impatient, +who would repine at death in the society of all +things that suffer under it. Had not almost every man +suffered by the press, or were not the tyranny thereof +become universal, I had not wanted reason for complaint: +but in times wherein I have lived to behold +the highest perversion of that excellent invention, the +name of his Majesty defamed, the honour of Parliament +depraved, the writings of both depravedly, anticipatively, +counterfeitly, imprinted: complaints may +seem ridiculous in private persons; and men of my +condition may be as incapable of affronts, as hopeless +of their reparations. And truly had not the duty I +owe unto the importunity of friends, and the allegiance +I must ever acknowledge unto truth, prevailed with +me; the inactivity of my disposition might have made +these sufferings continual, and time, that brings other +things to light, should have satisfied me in the remedy +of its oblivion. But because things evidently false are +not only printed, but many things of truth most falsely +set forth; in this latter I could not but think myself +engaged: for, though we have no power to redress the +former, yet in the other reparation being within ourselves, +I have at present represented unto the world a +full and intended copy of that piece, which was most +imperfectly and surreptitiously published before.</p> + +<p>This I confess, about seven years past, with some +others of affinity thereto, for my private exercise and +satisfaction, I had at leisurable hours composed; which +being communicated unto one, it became common unto +many, and was by transcription successively corrupted, +until it arrived in a most depraved copy at the press. +He that shall peruse that work, and shall take notice +of sundry particulars and personal expressions therein, +will easily discern the intention was not publick: and, +being a private exercise directed to myself, what is delivered +therein was rather a memorial unto me, than an +example or rule unto any other: and therefore, if there +be any singularity therein correspondent unto the private +conceptions of any man, it doth not advantage +them; or if dissentaneous thereunto, it no way overthrows +them. It was penned in such a place, and with +such disadvantage, that (I protest), from the first setting +of pen unto paper, I had not the assistance of any good +book, whereby to promote my invention, or relieve my +memory; and therefore there might be many real lapses +therein, which others might take notice of, and more +that I suspected myself. It was set down many years +past, and was the sense of my conceptions at that time, +not an immutable law unto my advancing judgment at +all times; and therefore there might be many things +therein plausible unto my passed apprehension, which +are not agreeable unto my present self. There are many +things delivered rhetorically, many expressions therein +merely tropical, and as they best illustrate my intention; +and therefore also there are many things to be +taken in a soft and flexible sense, and not to be called +unto the rigid test of reason. Lastly, all that is contained +therein is in submission unto maturer discernments; +and, as I have declared, shall no further father +them than the best and learned judgments shall authorize +them: under favour of which considerations, I +have made its secrecy publick, and committed the truth +thereof to every ingenuous reader.</p> + +<p class="sig"> +<span class="smcap">Thomas Browne.</span><br /> +</p> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 125px;"> +<img src="images/zill_023.jpg" width="125" height="108" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> +<a name="RELIGIO_MEDICI" id="RELIGIO_MEDICI"></a> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_025_1.png" width="450" height="102" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<h2 class="nobreak">RELIGIO MEDICI.</h2> + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_025_2.png" width="70" height="71" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">SECT.</span> 1.—For my religion, though there be several +circumstances that might persuade the world I +have none at all,—as the general scandal of my +profession,<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>—the natural course of my studies,—the indifferency +of my behaviour and discourse in matters of +religion (neither violently defending one, nor with that +common ardour and contention opposing another),—yet, +in despite hereof, I dare without usurpation assume +the honourable style of a Christian. Not that I merely +owe this title to the font, my education, or the clime +wherein I was born, as being bred up either to confirm +those principles my parents instilled into my understanding, +or by a general consent proceed in the religion +of my country; but having, in my riper years and confirmed +judgment, seen and examined all, I find myself +obliged, by the principles of grace, and the law of mine +own reason, to embrace no other name but this. Neither +doth herein my zeal so far make me forget the general +charity I owe unto humanity, as rather to hate than +pity Turks, Infidels, and (what is worse) Jews; rather +contenting myself to enjoy that happy style, than +maligning those who refuse so glorious a title.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 2.—But, because the name of a Christian is become +too general to express our faith,—there being a +geography of religion as well as lands, and every clime +distinguished not only by their laws and limits, but +circumscribed by their doctrines and rules of faith,—to +be particular, I am of that reformed new-cast religion, +wherein I dislike nothing but the name; of the same +belief our Saviour taught, the apostles disseminated, +the fathers authorized, and the martyrs confirmed; but, +by the sinister ends of princes, the ambition and avarice +of prelates, and the fatal corruption of times, so decayed, +impaired, and fallen from its native beauty, that it required +the careful and charitable hands of these times +to restore it to its primitive integrity. Now, the accidental +occasion whereupon, the slender means whereby, +the low and abject condition of the person by whom, +so good a work was set on foot, which in our adversaries +beget contempt and scorn, fills me with wonder, +and is the very same objection the insolent pagans first +cast at Christ and his disciples.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 3.—Yet have I not so shaken hands with those +desperate resolutions who had rather venture at large +their decayed bottom, than bring her in to be new-trimmed +in the dock,—who had rather promiscuously +retain all, than abridge any, and obstinately be what +they are, than what they have been,—as to stand in +diameter and sword’s point with them. We have reformed +from them, not against them: for, omitting +those improperations<a name="FNanchor_2" id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> and terms of scurrility betwixt +us, which only difference our affections, and not our +cause, there is between us one common name and appellation, +one faith and necessary body of principles +common to us both; and therefore I am not scrupulous +to converse and live with them, to enter their churches +in defect of ours, and either pray with them or for them. +I could never perceive any rational consequences from +those many texts which prohibit the children of Israel +to pollute themselves with the temples of the heathens; +we being all Christians, and not divided by such detested +impieties as might profane our prayers, or the +place wherein we make them; or that a resolved conscience +may not adore her Creator anywhere, especially +in places devoted to his service; if their devotions +offend him, mine may please him: if theirs profane it, +mine may hallow it. Holy water and crucifix (dangerous +to the common people) deceive not my judgment, +nor abuse my devotion at all. I am, I confess, naturally +inclined to that which misguided zeal terms superstition: +my common conversation I do acknowledge +austere, my behaviour full of rigour, sometimes not +without morosity; yet, at my devotion I love to use +the civility of my knee, my hat, and hand, with all +those outward and sensible motions which may express +or promote my invisible devotion. I should violate my +own arm rather than a church; nor willingly deface +the name of saint or martyr. At the sight of a cross, or +crucifix, I can dispense with my hat, but scarce with +the thought or memory of my Saviour. I cannot laugh +at, but rather pity, the fruitless journeys of pilgrims, +or contemn the miserable condition of friars; for, though +misplaced in circumstances, there is something in it of +devotion. I could never hear the Ave-Mary bell<a name="FNanchor_I._1" id="FNanchor_I._1"></a><a href="#Footnote_I._1" class="fnanchor">[I.]</a> +without an elevation, or think it a sufficient warrant, +because they erred in one circumstance, for me to err +in all,—that is, in silence and dumb contempt. Whilst, +therefore, they direct their devotions to her, I offered +mine to God; and rectify the errors of their prayers by +rightly ordering mine own. At a solemn procession I +have wept abundantly, while my consorts, blind with +opposition and prejudice, have fallen into an excess of +scorn and laughter. There are, questionless, both in +Greek, Roman, and African churches, solemnities and +ceremonies, whereof the wiser zeals do make a Christian +use; and stand condemned by us, not as evil in +themselves, but as allurements and baits of superstition +to those vulgar heads that look asquint on the face of +truth, and those unstable judgments that cannot resist +in the narrow point and centre of virtue without a reel +or stagger to the circumference.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 4.—As there were many reformers, so likewise +many reformations; every country proceeding in a particular +way and method, according as their national +interest, together with their constitution and clime, inclined +them: some angrily and with extremity; others +calmly and with mediocrity, not rending, but easily +dividing, the community, and leaving an honest possibility +of a reconciliation;—which, though peaceable +spirits do desire, and may conceive that revolution of +time and the mercies of God may effect, yet that judgment +that shall consider the present antipathies between +the two extremes,—their contrarieties in condition, +affection, and opinion,—may, with the same hopes, +expect a union in the poles of heaven.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 5.—But, to difference myself nearer, and draw +into a lesser circle; there is no church whose every part +so squares unto my conscience, whose articles, constitutions, +and customs, seem so consonant unto reason, and, +as it were, framed to my particular devotion, as this +whereof I hold my belief—the Church of England; to +whose faith I am a sworn subject, and therefore, in a +double obligation, subscribe unto her articles, and endeavour +to observe her constitutions: whatsoever is +beyond, as points indifferent, I observe, according to the +rules of my private reason, or the humour and fashion +of my devotion; neither believing this because Luther +affirmed it, nor disproving that because Calvin hath disavouched +it. I condemn not all things in the council +of Trent, nor approve all in the synod of Dort.<a name="FNanchor_3" id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> In +brief, where the Scripture is silent, the church is my +text; where that speaks, ’tis but my comment;<a name="FNanchor_4" id="FNanchor_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> where +there is a joint silence of both, I borrow not the rules of +my religion from Rome or Geneva, but from the dictates +of my own reason. It is an unjust scandal of our adversaries, +and a gross error in ourselves, to compute the +nativity of our religion from Henry the Eighth; who, +though he rejected the Pope, refused not the faith of +Rome,<a name="FNanchor_5" id="FNanchor_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> and effected no more than what his own predecessors +desired and essayed in ages past, and it was +conceived the state of Venice would have attempted in +our days.<a name="FNanchor_6" id="FNanchor_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> It is as uncharitable a point in us to fall +upon those popular scurrilities and opprobrious scoffs of +the Bishop of Rome, to whom, as a temporal prince, we +owe the duty of good language. I confess there is a +cause of passion between us: by his sentence I stand +excommunicated; heretic is the best language he affords +me: yet can no ear witness I ever returned to him the +name of antichrist, man of sin, or whore of Babylon. +It is the method of charity to suffer without reaction: +those usual satires and invectives of the pulpit may perchance +produce a good effect on the vulgar, whose ears +are opener to rhetoric than logic; yet do they, in no +wise, confirm the faith of wiser believers, who know +that a good cause needs not be pardoned by passion, +but can sustain itself upon a temperate dispute.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 6.—I could never divide myself from any man +upon the difference of an opinion, or be angry with his +judgment for not agreeing with me in that from which, +perhaps, within a few days, I should dissent myself. I +have no genius to disputes in religion: and have often +thought it wisdom to decline them, especially upon a +disadvantage, or when the cause of truth might suffer +in the weakness of my patronage. Where we desire to +be informed, ’tis good to contest with men above ourselves; +but, to confirm and establish our opinions, ’tis +best to argue with judgments below our own, that the +frequent spoils and victories over their reasons may +settle in ourselves an esteem and confirmed opinion of +our own. Every man is not a proper champion for +truth, nor fit to take up the gauntlet in the cause of +verity; many, from the ignorance of these maxims, and +an inconsiderate zeal unto truth, have too rashly charged +the troops of error and remain as trophies unto the +enemies of truth. A man may be in as just possession +of truth as of a city, and yet be forced to surrender; ’tis +therefore far better to enjoy her with peace than to +hazard her on a battle. If, therefore, there rise any +doubts in my way, I do forget them, or at least defer +them, till my better settled judgment and more manly +reason be able to resolve them; for I perceive every +man’s own reason is his best Œdipus,<a name="FNanchor_7" id="FNanchor_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> and will, upon a +reasonable truce, find a way to loose those bonds wherewith +the subtleties of error have enchained our more +flexible and tender judgments. In philosophy, where +truth seems double-faced, there is no man more paradoxical +than myself: but in divinity I love to keep the +road; and, though not in an implicit, yet an humble +faith, follow the great wheel of the church, by which I +move; not reserving any proper poles, or motion from +the epicycle of my own brain. By this means I have +no gap for heresy, schisms, or errors, of which at present, +I hope I shall not injure truth to say, I have no +taint or tincture. I must confess my greener studies +have been polluted with two or three; not any begotten +in the latter centuries, but old and obsolete, such as +could never have been revived but by such extravagant +and irregular heads as mine. For, indeed, heresies perish +not with their authors; but, like the river Arethusa,<a name="FNanchor_8" id="FNanchor_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> +though they lose their currents in one place, they rise +up again in another. One general council is not able +to extirpate one single heresy: it may be cancelled for +the present; but revolution of time, and the like aspects +from heaven, will restore it, when it will flourish till it +be condemned again. For, as though there were metempsychosis, +and the soul of one man passed into another, +opinions do find, after certain revolutions, men and +minds like those that first begat them. To see ourselves +again, we need not look for Plato’s year:<a name="FNanchor_II._2" id="FNanchor_II._2"></a><a href="#Footnote_II._2" class="fnanchor">[II.]</a> every +man is not only himself; there have been many +Diogenes, and as many Timons, though but few of that +name; men are lived over again; the world is now as +it was in ages past; there was none then, but there hath +been some one since, that parallels him, and is, as it +were, his revived self.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 7.—Now, the first of mine was that of the +Arabians;<a name="FNanchor_9" id="FNanchor_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> that the souls of men perished with their +bodies, but should yet be raised again at the last day: +not that I did absolutely conceive a mortality of the +soul, but, if that were (which faith, not philosophy, +hath yet thoroughly disproved), and that both entered +the grave together, yet I held the same conceit thereof +that we all do of the body, that it rise again. Surely it +is but the merits of our unworthy natures, if we sleep +in darkness until the last alarm. A serious reflex upon +my own unworthiness did make me backward from +challenging this prerogative of my soul: so that I +might enjoy my Saviour at the last, I could with +patience be nothing almost unto eternity. The second +was that of Origen; that God would not persist in his +vengeance for ever, but, after a definite time of his +wrath, would release the damned souls from torture; +which error I fell into upon a serious contemplation of +the great attribute of God, his mercy; and did a little +cherish it in myself, because I found therein no malice, +and a ready weight to sway me from the other extreme +of despair, whereunto melancholy and contemplative +natures are too easily disposed. A third there is, which +I did never positively maintain or practise, but have +often wished it had been consonant to truth, and not +offensive to my religion; and that is, the prayer for the +dead; whereunto I was inclined from some charitable +inducements, whereby I could scarce contain my prayers +for a friend at the ringing of a bell, or behold his corpse +without an orison for his soul. ’Twas a good way, +methought, to be remembered by posterity, and far +more noble than a history. These opinions I never +maintained with pertinacity, or endeavoured to inveigle +any man’s belief unto mine, nor so much as ever +revealed, or disputed them with my dearest friends; by +which means I neither propagated them in others nor +confirmed them in myself: but, suffering them to flame +upon their own substance, without addition of new +fuel, they went out insensibly of themselves; therefore +these opinions, though condemned by lawful councils, +were not heresies in me, but bare errors, and single +lapses of my understanding, without a joint depravity +of my will. Those have not only depraved understandings, +but diseased affections, which cannot enjoy a +singularity without a heresy, or be the author of an +opinion without they be of a sect also. This was the +villany of the first schism of Lucifer; who was not +content to err alone, but drew into his faction many +legions; and upon this experience he tempted only Eve, +well understanding the communicable nature of sin, and +that to deceive but one was tacitly and upon consequence +to delude them both.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 8.—That heresies should arise, we have the +prophecy of Christ; but, that old ones should be +abolished, we hold no prediction. That there must +be heresies, is true, not only in our church, but also in +any other: even in the doctrines heretical there will be +superheresies; and Arians, not only divided from the +church, but also among themselves: for heads that are +disposed unto schism, and complexionally propense to +innovation, are naturally indisposed for a community; +nor will be ever confined unto the order or economy of +one body; and therefore, when they separate from +others, they knit but loosely among themselves; nor +contented with a general breach or dichotomy<a name="FNanchor_10" id="FNanchor_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> with +their church, do subdivide and mince themselves almost +into atoms. ’Tis true, that men of singular parts and +humours have not been free from singular opinions and +conceits in all ages; retaining something, not only +beside the opinion of his own church, or any other, but +also any particular author; which, notwithstanding, a +sober judgment may do without offence or heresy; for +there is yet, after all the decrees of councils, and the +niceties of the schools, many things, untouched, unimagined, +wherein the liberty of an honest reason may +play and expatiate with security, and far without the +circle of a heresy.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 9.—As for those wingy mysteries in divinity, +and airy subtleties in religion, which have unhinged +the brains of better heads, they never stretched the <i>pia +mater</i><a name="FNanchor_11" id="FNanchor_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> of mine. Methinks there be not impossibilities +enough in religion for an active faith: the deepest +mysteries ours contains have not only been illustrated, +but maintained, by syllogism and the rule of reason. I +love to lose myself in a mystery; to pursue my reason +to an <i>O altitudo!</i> ’Tis my solitary recreation to pose +my apprehension with those involved enigmas and +riddles of the Trinity—with incarnation and resurrection. +I can answer all the objections of Satan and my +rebellious reason with that odd resolution I learned of +Tertullian, “<i>Certum est quia impossibile est</i>.” I desire +to exercise my faith in the difficultest point; for, to +credit ordinary and visible objects, is not faith, but +persuasion. Some believe the better for seeing Christ’s +sepulchre; and, when they have seen the Red Sea, +doubt not of the miracle. Now, contrarily, I bless +myself, and am thankful, that I lived not in the days +of miracles; that I never saw Christ nor his disciples. +I would not have been one of those Israelites that +passed the Red Sea; nor one of Christ’s patients, on +whom he wrought his wonders: then had my faith been +thrust upon me; nor should I enjoy that greater blessing +pronounced to all that believe and saw not. ’Tis an +easy and necessary belief, to credit what our eye and +sense hath examined. I believe he was dead, and +buried, and rose again; and desire to see him in his +glory, rather than to contemplate him in his cenotaph +or sepulchre. Nor is this much to believe; as we have +reason, we owe this faith unto history: they only had +the advantage of a bold and noble faith, who lived +before his coming, who, upon obscure prophesies and +mystical types, could raise a belief, and expect apparent +impossibilities.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 10.—’Tis true, there is an edge in all firm belief, +and with an easy metaphor we may say, the sword of +faith; but in these obscurities I rather use it in the +adjunct the apostle gives it, a buckler; under which I +conceive a wary combatant may lie invulnerable. Since +I was of understanding to know that we knew nothing, +my reason hath been more pliable to the will of faith: +I am now content to understand a mystery, without a +rigid definition, in an easy and Platonic description. +That allegorical description of Hermes<a name="FNanchor_III._3" id="FNanchor_III._3"></a><a href="#Footnote_III._3" class="fnanchor">[III.]</a> pleaseth me +beyond all the metaphysical definitions of divines. +Where I cannot satisfy my reason, I love to humour +my fancy: I had as lieve you tell me that <i>anima est +angelus hominis, est corpus Dei</i>, as ἐντελέχεια;—<i>lux est +umbra Dei</i>, as <i>actus perspicui</i>. Where there is an +obscurity too deep for our reason, ’tis good to sit down +with a description, periphrasis, or adumbration;<a name="FNanchor_12" id="FNanchor_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> for, +by acquainting our reason how unable it is to display +the visible and obvious effects of nature, it becomes +more humble and submissive unto the subtleties of faith: +and thus I teach my haggard and unreclaimed reason +to stoop unto the lure of faith. I believe there was +already a tree, whose fruit our unhappy parents tasted, +though, in the same chapter when God forbids it, ’tis +positively said, the plants of the field were not yet +grown; for God had not caused it to rain upon the +earth. I believe that the serpent (if we shall literally +understand it), from his proper form and figure, made +his motion on his belly, before the curse. I find the +trial of the pucelage and virginity of women, which God +ordained the Jews, is very fallible. Experience and +history informs me that, not only many particular +women, but likewise whole nations, have escaped the +curse of childbirth, which God seems to pronounce upon +the whole sex; yet do I believe that all this is true, +which, indeed, my reason would persuade me to be +false: and this, I think, is no vulgar part of faith, to +believe a thing not only above, but contrary to, reason, +and against the arguments of our proper senses.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 11.—In my solitary and retired imagination +(“<i>neque enim cum porticus aut me lectulus accepit, desum +mihi</i>”), I remember I am not alone; and therefore forget +not to contemplate him and his attributes, who is ever +with me, especially those two mighty ones, his wisdom +and eternity. With the one I recreate, with the other +I confound, my understanding: for who can speak of +eternity without a solecism, or think thereof without +an ecstasy? Time we may comprehend; ’tis but five +days elder than ourselves, and hath the same horoscope +with the world; but, to retire so far back as to apprehend +a beginning,—to give such an infinite start forwards +as to conceive an end,—in an essence that we +affirm hath neither the one nor the other, it puts my +reason to St Paul’s sanctuary: my philosophy dares not +say the angels can do it. God hath not made a creature +that can comprehend him; ’tis a privilege of his own +nature: “I am that I am” was his own definition unto +Moses; and ’twas a short one to confound mortality, +that durst question God, or ask him what he was. Indeed, +he only is; all others have and shall be; but, in +eternity, there is no distinction of tenses; and therefore +that terrible term, predestination, which hath troubled +so many weak heads to conceive, and the wisest to explain, +is in respect to God no prescious determination of +our estates to come, but a definitive blast of his will +already fulfilled, and at the instant that he first decreed +it; for, to his eternity, which is indivisible, and altogether, +the last trump is already sounded, the reprobates +in the flame, and the blessed in Abraham’s bosom. St +Peter speaks modestly, when he saith, “a thousand +years to God are but as one day;” for, to speak like a +philosopher, those continued instances of time, which +flow into a thousand years, make not to him one moment. +What to us is to come, to his eternity is present; his +whole duration being but one permanent point, without +succession, parts, flux, or division.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 12.—There is no attribute that adds more difficulty +to the mystery of the Trinity, where, though in a +relative way of Father and Son, we must deny a priority. +I wonder how Aristotle could conceive the world eternal, +or how he could make good two eternities. His similitude, +of a triangle comprehended in a square, doth somewhat +illustrate the trinity of our souls, and that the +triple unity of God; for there is in us not three, but a +trinity of, souls; because there is in us, if not three distinct +souls, yet differing faculties, that can and do subsist +apart in different subjects, and yet in us are thus united +as to make but one soul and substance. If one soul +were so perfect as to inform three distinct bodies, that +were a pretty trinity. Conceive the distinct number of +three, not divided nor separated by the intellect, but +actually comprehended in its unity, and that a perfect +trinity. I have often admired the mystical way of +Pythagoras, and the secret magick of numbers. “Beware +of philosophy,” is a precept not to be received in +too large a sense: for, in this mass of nature, there is +a set of things that carry in their front, though not in +capital letters, yet in stenography and short characters, +something of divinity; which, to wiser reasons, serve as +luminaries in the abyss of knowledge, and, to judicious +beliefs, as scales and roundles to mount the pinnacles +and highest pieces of divinity. The severe schools shall +never laugh me out of the philosophy of Hermes, that +this visible world is but a picture of the invisible, wherein, +as in a portrait, things are not truly, but in equivocal +shapes, and as they counterfeit some real substance in +that invisible fabrick.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 13.—That other attribute, wherewith I recreate +my devotion, is his wisdom, in which I am happy; and +for the contemplation of this only do not repent me that +I was bred in the way of study. The advantage I have +therein, is an ample recompense for all my endeavours, +in what part of knowledge soever. Wisdom is his most +beauteous attribute: no man can attain unto it: yet +Solomon pleased God when he desired it. He is wise, +because he knows all things; and he knoweth all things, +because he made them all: but his greatest knowledge +is in comprehending that he made not, that is, himself. +And this is also the greatest knowledge in man. For +this do I honour my own profession, and embrace the +counsel even of the devil himself: had he read such a +lecture in Paradise as he did at Delphos,<a name="FNanchor_IV._4" id="FNanchor_IV._4"></a><a href="#Footnote_IV._4" class="fnanchor">[IV.]</a><a name="FNanchor_13" id="FNanchor_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> we had +better known ourselves; nor had we stood in fear to +know him. I know God is wise in all; wonderful in +what we conceive, but far more in what we comprehend +not: for we behold him but asquint, upon reflex or +shadow; our understanding is dimmer than Moses’s +eye; we are ignorant of the back parts or lower side +of his divinity; therefore, to pry into the maze of his +counsels, is not only folly in man, but presumption +even in angels. Like us, they are his servants, not his +senators; he holds no counsel, but that mystical one of +the Trinity, wherein, though there be three persons, +there is but one mind that decrees without contradiction. +Nor needs he any; his actions are not begot +with deliberation; his wisdom naturally knows what’s +best: his intellect stands ready fraught with the superlative +and purest ideas of goodness, consultations, and +election, which are two motions in us, make but one in +him: his actions springing from his power at the first +touch of his will. These are contemplations metaphysical: +my humble speculations have another method, +and are content to trace and discover those expressions +he hath left in his creatures, and the obvious effects of +nature. There is no danger to profound<a name="FNanchor_14" id="FNanchor_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> these mysteries, +no <i>sanctum sanctorum</i> in philosophy. The world +was made to be inhabited by beasts, but studied and +contemplated by man: ’tis the debt of our reason we +owe unto God, and the homage we pay for not being +beasts. Without this, the world is still as though it +had not been, or as it was before the sixth day, when as +yet there was not a creature that could conceive or say +there was a world. The wisdom of God receives small +honour from those vulgar heads that rudely stare about, +and with a gross rusticity admire his works. Those +highly magnify him, whose judicious enquiry into his +acts, and deliberate research into his creatures, return +the duty of a devout and learned admiration. Therefore,</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">Search while thou wilt; and let thy reason go,</div> + <div class="verse">To ransom truth, e’en to th’ abyss below;</div> + <div class="verse">Rally the scatter’d causes; and that line</div> + <div class="verse">Which nature twists be able to untwine.</div> + <div class="verse">It is thy Maker’s will; for unto none</div> + <div class="verse">But unto reason can he e’er be known.</div> + <div class="verse">The devils do know thee; but those damn’d meteors</div> + <div class="verse">Build not thy glory, but confound thy creatures.</div> + <div class="verse">Teach my endeavours so thy works to read,</div> + <div class="verse">That learning them in thee I may proceed.</div> + <div class="verse">Give thou my reason that instructive flight,</div> + <div class="verse">Whose weary wings may on thy hands still light.</div> + <div class="verse">Teach me to soar aloft, yet ever so,</div> + <div class="verse">When near the sun, to stoop again below.</div> + <div class="verse">Thus shall my humble feathers safely hover,</div> + <div class="verse">And, though near earth, more than the heavens discover.</div> + <div class="verse">And then at last, when homeward I shall drive,</div> + <div class="verse">Rich with the spoils of nature, to my hive,</div> + <div class="verse">There will I sit, like that industrious fly,</div> + <div class="verse">Buzzing thy praises; which shall never die</div> + <div class="verse">Till death abrupts them, and succeeding glory</div> + <div class="verse">Bid me go on in a more lasting story.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>And this is almost all wherein an humble creature +may endeavour to requite, and some way to retribute +unto his Creator: for, if not he that saith, “Lord, Lord, +but he that doth the will of the Father, shall be saved,” +certainly our wills must be our performances, and our +intents make out our actions; otherwise our pious labours +shall find anxiety in our graves, and our best endeavours +not hope, but fear, a resurrection.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 14.—There is but one first cause, and four second +causes, of all things. Some are without efficient,<a name="FNanchor_15" id="FNanchor_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> as +God; others without matter, as angels; some without +form, as the first matter: but every essence, created or +uncreated, hath its final cause, and some positive end +both of its essence and operation. This is the cause I +grope after in the works of nature; on this hangs the +providence of God. To raise so beauteous a structure +as the world and the creatures thereof was but his art; +but their sundry and divided operations, with their predestinated +ends, are from the treasure of his wisdom. +In the causes, nature, and affections, of the eclipses of +the sun and moon, there is most excellent speculation; +but, to profound further, and to contemplate a reason +why his providence hath so disposed and ordered their +motions in that vast circle, as to conjoin and obscure +each other, is a sweeter piece of reason, and a diviner +point of philosophy. Therefore, sometimes, and in some +things, there appears to me as much divinity in Galen +his books, <i>De Usu Partium</i>,<a name="FNanchor_16" id="FNanchor_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> as in Suarez’s Metaphysicks. +Had Aristotle been as curious in the enquiry +of this cause as he was of the other, he had not left +behind him an imperfect piece of philosophy, but an +absolute tract of divinity.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 15.—<i>Natura nihil agit frustra</i>, is the only indisputable +axiom in philosophy. There are no grotesques +in nature; not any thing framed to fill up empty cantons, +and unnecessary spaces. In the most imperfect creatures, +and such as were not preserved in the ark, but, having +their seeds and principles in the womb of nature, are +everywhere, where the power of the sun is,—in these is +the wisdom of his hand discovered. Out of this rank +Solomon chose the object of his admiration; indeed, +what reason may not go to school to the wisdom of bees, +ants, and spiders? What wise hand teacheth them to +do what reason cannot teach us? Ruder heads stand +amazed at those prodigious pieces of nature, whales, +elephants, dromedaries, and camels; these, I confess, +are the colossus and majestick pieces of her hand; but +in these narrow engines there is more curious mathematicks; +and the civility of these little citizens more +neatly sets forth the wisdom of their Maker. Who +admires not Regio Montanus his fly beyond his eagle;<a name="FNanchor_17" id="FNanchor_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> +or wonders not more at the operation of two souls in +those little bodies than but one in the trunk of a cedar? +I could never content my contemplation with those +general pieces of wonder, the flux and reflux of the sea, +the increase of Nile, the conversion of the needle to the +north; and have studied to match and parallel those in +the more obvious and neglected pieces of nature which, +without farther travel, I can do in the cosmography of +myself. We carry with us the wonders we seek without +us: there is all Africa and her prodigies in us. We +are that bold and adventurous piece of nature, which +he that studies wisely learns, in a compendium, what +others labour at in a divided piece and endless volume.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 16.—Thus there are two books from whence I +collect my divinity. Besides that written one of God, +another of his servant, nature, that universal and publick +manuscript, that lies expansed unto the eyes of all. +Those that never saw him in the one have discovered +him in the other; this was the scripture and theology +of the heathens; the natural motion of the sun made +them more admire him than its supernatural station did +the children of Israel. The ordinary effects of nature +wrought more admiration in them than, in the other, +all his miracles. Surely the heathens knew better how +to join and read these mystical letters than we Christians, +who cast a more careless eye on these common hieroglyphics, +and disdain to suck divinity from the flowers +of nature. Nor do I so forget God as to adore the name +of nature; which I define not, with the schools, to be +the principle of motion and rest, but that straight and +regular line, that settled and constant course the wisdom +of God hath ordained the actions of his creatures, according +to their several kinds. To make a revolution every +day is the nature of the sun, because of that necessary +course which God hath ordained it, from which it cannot +swerve but by a faculty from that voice which first did +give it motion. Now this course of nature God seldom +alters or perverts; but, like an excellent artist, hath so +contrived his work, that, with the self-same instrument, +without a new creation, he may effect his obscurest +designs. Thus he sweeteneth the water with a word, +preserveth the creatures in the ark, which the blest of +his mouth might have as easily created;—for God is +like a skilful geometrician, who, when more easily, and +with one stroke of his compass, he might describe or +divide a right line, had yet rather do this in a circle or +longer way, according to the constituted and forelaid +principles of his art: yet this rule of his he doth sometimes +pervert, to acquaint the world with his prerogative, +lest the arrogancy of our reason should question his +power, and conclude he could not. And thus I call the +effects of nature the works of God, whose hand and +instrument she only is; and therefore, to ascribe his +actions unto her is to devolve the honour of the principal +agent upon the instrument; which if with reason +we may do, then let our hammers rise up and boast they +have built our houses, and our pens receive the honour +of our writing. I hold there is a general beauty in the +works of God, and therefore no deformity in any kind +of species of creature whatsoever. I cannot tell by what +logick we call a toad, a bear, or an elephant ugly; they +being created in those outward shapes and figures which +best express the actions of their inward forms; and +having passed that general visitation of God, who saw +that all that he had made was good, that is, conformable +to his will, which abhors deformity, and is the rule of +order and beauty. There is no deformity but in monstrosity; +wherein, notwithstanding, there is a kind of +beauty; nature so ingeniously contriving the irregular +part, as they become sometimes more remarkable than +the principal fabrick. To speak yet more narrowly, +there was never any thing ugly or mis-shapen, but the +chaos; wherein, notwithstanding, to speak strictly, there +was no deformity, because no form; nor was it yet impregnant +by the voice of God. Now nature is not at +variance with art, nor art with nature; they being both +the servants of his providence. Art is the perfection of +nature. Were the world now as it was the sixth day, +there were yet a chaos. Nature hath made one world, +and art another. In brief, all things are artificial; for +nature is the art of God.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 17.—This is the ordinary and open way of his +providence, which art and industry have in good part +discovered; whose effects we may foretell without an +oracle. To foreshow these is not prophecy, but prognostication. +There is another way, full of meanders +and labyrinths, whereof the devil and spirits have no +exact ephemerides: and that is a more particular and +obscure method of his providence; directing the operations +of individual and single essences: this we call +fortune; that serpentine and crooked line, whereby he +draws those actions his wisdom intends in a more unknown +and secret way; this cryptic<a name="FNanchor_18" id="FNanchor_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> and involved +method of his providence have I ever admired; nor +can I relate the history of my life, the occurrences of +my days, the escapes, or dangers, and hits of chance, +with a <i>bezo las manos</i> to Fortune, or a bare gramercy to +my good stars. Abraham might have thought the ram +in the thicket came thither by accident: human reason +would have said that mere chance conveyed Moses in +the ark to the sight of Pharaoh’s daughter. What a +labyrinth is there in the story of Joseph! able to convert +a stoick. Surely there are in every man’s life +certain rubs, doublings, and wrenches, which pass a +while under the effects of chance; but at the last, well +examined, prove the mere hand of God. ’Twas not +dumb chance that, to discover the fougade,<a name="FNanchor_19" id="FNanchor_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> or powder +plot, contrived a miscarriage in the letter. I like the +victory of ’88<a name="FNanchor_20" id="FNanchor_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a> the better for that one occurrence which +our enemies imputed to our dishonour, and the partiality +of fortune; to wit, the tempests and contrariety of +winds. King Philip did not detract from the nation, +when he said, he sent his armada to fight with men, +and not to combat with the winds. Where there is a +manifest disproportion between the powers and forces +of two several agents, upon a maxim of reason we may +promise the victory to the superior: but when unexpected +accidents slip in, and unthought-of occurrences +intervene, these must proceed from a power that owes +no obedience to those axioms; where, as in the writing +upon the wall, we may behold the hand, but see not +the spring that moves it. The success of that petty +province of Holland (of which the Grand Seignior +proudly said, if they should trouble him, as they did +the Spaniard, he would send his men with shovels and +pickaxes, and throw it into the sea) I cannot altogether +ascribe to the ingenuity and industry of the people, but +the mercy of God, that hath disposed them to such a +thriving genius; and to the will of his providence, that +disposeth her favour to each country in their preordinate +season. All cannot be happy at once; for, because the +glory of one state depends upon the ruin of another, +there is a revolution and vicissitude of their greatness, +and must obey the swing of that wheel, not moved by +intelligencies, but by the hand of God, whereby all +estates arise to their zenith and vertical points, according +to their predestinated periods. For the lives, not +only of men, but of commonwealths and the whole +world, run not upon a helix that still enlargeth; but +on a circle, where, arriving to their meridian, they +decline in obscurity, and fall under the horizon again.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 18.—These must not therefore be named the +effects of fortune but in a relative way, and as we term +the works of nature. It was the ignorance of man’s +reason that begat this very name, and by a careless +term miscalled the providence of God: for there is no +liberty for causes to operate in a loose and straggling +way; nor any effect whatsoever but hath its warrant +from some universal or superior cause. ’Tis not a +ridiculous devotion to say a prayer before a game at +tables; for, even in sortileges<a name="FNanchor_21" id="FNanchor_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> and matters of greatest +uncertainty, there is a settled and preordered course of +effects. It is we that are blind, not fortune. Because +our eye is too dim to discover the mystery of her effects, +we foolishly paint her blind, and hoodwink the providence +of the Almighty. I cannot justify that contemptible +proverb, that “fools only are fortunate;” or +that insolent paradox, that “a wise man is out of the +reach of fortune;” much less those opprobrious epithets +of poets,—“whore,” “bawd,” and “strumpet.” ’Tis, I confess, +the common fate of men of singular gifts of mind, to +be destitute of those of fortune; which doth not any way +deject the spirit of wiser judgments who thoroughly +understand the justice of this proceeding; and, being +enriched with higher donatives, cast a more careless +eye on these vulgar parts of felicity. It is a most unjust +ambition, to desire to engross the mercies of the +Almighty, not to be content with the goods of mind, +without a possession of those of body or fortune: and +it is an error, worse than heresy, to adore these complimental +and circumstantial pieces of felicity, and undervalue +those perfections and essential points of happiness, +wherein we resemble our Maker. To wiser desires +it is satisfaction enough to deserve, though not to enjoy, +the favours of fortune. Let providence provide for fools: +’tis not partiality, but equity, in God, who deals with us +but as our natural parents. Those that are able of body +and mind he leaves to their deserts; to those of weaker +merits he imparts a larger portion; and pieces out the +defect of one by the excess of the other. Thus have we +no just quarrel with nature for leaving us naked; or to +envy the horns, hoofs, skins, and furs of other creatures; +being provided with reason, that can supply them all. +We need not labour, with so many arguments, to confute +judicial astrology; for, if there be a truth therein, +it doth not injure divinity. If to be born under Mercury +disposeth us to be witty; under Jupiter to be +wealthy; I do not owe a knee unto these, but unto +that merciful hand that hath ordered my indifferent +and uncertain nativity unto such benevolous aspects. +Those that hold that all things are governed by fortune, +had not erred, had they not persisted there. The +Romans, that erected a temple to Fortune, acknowledged +therein, though in a blinder way, somewhat of +divinity; for, in a wise supputation,<a name="FNanchor_22" id="FNanchor_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a> all things begin +and end in the Almighty. There is a nearer way to +heaven than Homer’s chain;<a name="FNanchor_23" id="FNanchor_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> an easy logick may conjoin +a heaven and earth in one argument, and, with less +than a sorites,<a name="FNanchor_24" id="FNanchor_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> resolve all things to God. For though +we christen effects by their most sensible and nearest +causes, yet is God the true and infallible cause of all; +whose concourse, though it be general, yet doth it subdivide +itself into the particular actions of every thing, +and is that spirit, by which each singular essence not +only subsists, but performs its operation.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 19.—The bad construction and perverse comment +on these pair of second causes, or visible hands of +God, have perverted the devotion of many unto atheism; +who, forgetting the honest advisoes of faith, have listened +unto the conspiracy of passion and reason. I +have therefore always endeavoured to compose those +feuds and angry dissensions between affection, faith, +and reason: for there is in our soul a kind of triumvirate, +or triple government of three competitors, which +distracts the peace of this our commonwealth not less +than did that other<a name="FNanchor_25" id="FNanchor_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a> the state of Rome.</p> + +<p>As reason is a rebel unto faith, so passion unto reason. +As the propositions of faith seem absurd unto reason, +so the theorems of reason unto passion and both unto +reason; yet a moderate and peaceable discretion may +so state and order the matter, that they may be all +kings, and yet make but one monarchy: every one +exercising his sovereignty and prerogative in a due +time and place, according to the restraint and limit of +circumstance. There are, as in philosophy, so in +divinity, sturdy doubts, and boisterous objections, +wherewith the unhappiness of our knowledge too +nearly acquainteth us. More of these no man hath +known than myself; which I confess I conquered, not +in a martial posture, but on my knees. For our endeavours +are not only to combat with doubts, but +always to dispute with the devil. The villany of that +spirit takes a hint of infidelity from our studios; and, +by demonstrating a naturality in one way, makes us +mistrust a miracle in another. Thus, having perused +the Archidoxes, and read the secret sympathies of +things, he would dissuade my belief from the miracle +of the brazen serpent; make me conceit that image +worked by sympathy, and was but an Egyptian trick, +to cure their diseases without a miracle. Again, having +seen some experiments of bitumen, and having read far +more of naphtha, he whispered to my curiosity the fire +of the altar might be natural, and bade me mistrust a +miracle in Elias, when he intrenched the altar round +with water: for that inflamable substance yields not +easily unto water, but flames in the arms of its antagonist. +And thus would he inveigle my belief to +think the combustion of Sodom might be natural, and +that there was an asphaltick and bituminous nature in +that lake before the fire of Gomorrah. I know that +manna is now plentifully gathered in Calabria; and +Josephus tells me, in his days it was as plentiful in +Arabia. The devil therefore made the query, “Where +was then the miracle in the days of Moses?” The +Israelites saw but that, in his time, which the natives +of those countries behold in ours. Thus the devil +played at chess with me, and, yielding a pawn, thought +to gain a queen of me; taking advantage of my honest +endeavours; and, whilst I laboured to raise the structure +of my reason, he strove to undermine the edifice of +my faith.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 20.—Neither had these or any other ever such +advantage of me, as to incline me to any point of infidelity +or desperate positions of atheism; for I have +been these many years of opinion there was never any. +Those that held religion was the difference of man from +beasts, have spoken probably, and proceed upon a principle +as inductive as the other. That doctrine of +Epicurus, that denied the providence of God, was no +atheism, but a magnificent and high-strained conceit of +his majesty, which he deemed too sublime to mind the +trivial actions of those inferior creatures. That fatal +necessity of the stoicks is nothing but the immutable +law of his will. Those that heretofore denied the +divinity of the Holy Ghost have been condemned but +as hereticks; and those that now deny our Saviour, +though more than hereticks, are not so much as atheists: +for, though they deny two persons in the Trinity, they +hold, as we do, there is but one God.</p> + +<p>That villain and secretary of hell,<a name="FNanchor_26" id="FNanchor_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> that composed that +miscreant piece of the three impostors, though divided +from all religions, and neither Jew, Turk, nor Christian, +was not a positive atheist. I confess every country hath +its Machiavel, every age its Lucian, whereof common +heads must not hear, nor more advanced judgments too +rashly venture on. It is the rhetorick of Satan; and +may pervert a loose or prejudicate belief.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 21.—I confess I have perused them all, and can +discover nothing that may startle a discreet belief; yet +are their heads carried off with the wind and breath of +such motives. I remember a doctor in physick, of +Italy, who could not perfectly believe the immortality +of the soul, because Galen seemed to make a doubt +thereof. With another I was familiarly acquainted, in +France, a divine, and a man of singular parts, that on +the same point was so plunged and gravelled with three +lines of Seneca,<a name="FNanchor_V._5" id="FNanchor_V._5"></a><a href="#Footnote_V._5" class="fnanchor">[V.]</a> that all our antidotes, drawn from +both Scripture and philosophy, could not expel the +poison of his error. There are a set of heads that can +credit the relations of mariners, yet question the testimonies +of Saint Paul: and peremptorily maintain the +traditions of Ælian or Pliny; yet, in histories of Scripture, +raise queries and objections: believing no more +than they can parallel in human authors. I confess +there are, in Scripture, stories that do exceed the fables +of poets, and, to a captious reader, sound like Garagantua +or Bevis.<a name="FNanchor_27" id="FNanchor_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Search all the legends of times past, +and the fabulous conceits of these present, and ’twill be +hard to find one that deserves to carry the buckler unto +Samson; yet is all this of an easy possibility, if we conceive +a divine concourse, or an influence from the little +finger of the Almighty. It is impossible that, either +in the discourse of man or in the infallible voice of +God, to the weakness of our apprehensions there should +not appear irregularities, contradictions, and antinomies:<a name="FNanchor_28" id="FNanchor_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a> +myself could show a catalogue of doubts, never +yet imagined nor questioned, as I know, which are not +resolved at the first hearing; not fantastick queries or +objections of air; for I cannot hear of atoms in divinity. +I can read the history of the pigeon that was sent out of +the ark, and returned no more, yet not question how +she found out her mate that was left behind: that +Lazarus was raised from the dead, yet not demand +where, in the interim, his soul awaited; or raise a law-case, +whether his heir might lawfully detain his inheritance +bequeathed upon him by his death, and he, though +restored to life, have no plea or title unto his former +possessions. Whether Eve was framed out of the left +side of Adam, I dispute not; because I stand not yet +assured which is the right side of a man; or whether +there be any such distinction in nature. That she was +edified out of the rib of Adam, I believe; yet raise no +question who shall arise with that rib at the resurrection. +Whether Adam was an hermaphrodite, as the rabbins +contend upon the letter of the text; because it is contrary +to reason, there should be an hermaphrodite +before there was a woman, or a composition of two +natures, before there was a second composed. Likewise, +whether the world was created in autumn, summer, or +the spring; because it was created in them all: for, +whatsoever sign the sun possesseth, those four seasons +are actually existent. It is the nature of this luminary to +distinguish the several seasons of the year; all which it +makes at one time in the whole earth, and successively in +any part thereof. There are a bundle of curiosities, not +only in philosophy, but in divinity, proposed and discussed +by men of most supposed abilities, which indeed are not +worthy our vacant hours, much less our serious studies. +Pieces only fit to be placed in Pantagruel’s library, or +bound up with Tartaratus, <i>De Modo Cacandi</i>.<a name="FNanchor_VI._6" id="FNanchor_VI._6"></a><a href="#Footnote_VI._6" class="fnanchor">[VI.]</a><a name="FNanchor_29" id="FNanchor_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a></p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 22.—These are niceties that become not those +that peruse so serious a mystery. There are others +more generally questioned, and called to the bar, yet, +methinks, of an easy and possible truth.</p> + +<p>’Tis ridiculous to put off or down the general flood +of Noah, in that particular inundation of Deucalion.<a name="FNanchor_30" id="FNanchor_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a> +That there was a deluge once seems not to me so great +a miracle as that there is not one always. How all the +kinds of creatures, not only in their own bulks, but +with a competency of food and sustenance, might be +preserved in one ark, and within the extent of three +hundred cubits, to a reason that rightly examines it, +will appear very feasible. There is another secret, not +contained in the Scripture, which is more hard to comprehend, +and put the honest Father<a name="FNanchor_31" id="FNanchor_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> to the refuge of a +miracle; and that is, not only how the distinct pieces +of the world, and divided islands, should be first planted +by men, but inhabited by tigers, panthers, and bears. +How America abounded with beasts of prey, and +noxious animals, yet contained not in it that necessary +creature, a horse, is very strange. By what passage +those, not only birds, but dangerous and unwelcome +beasts, come over. How there be creatures there +(which are not found in this triple continent). All +which must needs be strange unto us, that hold but one +ark; and that the creatures began their progress from +the mountains of Ararat. They who, to salve this, +would make the deluge particular, proceed upon a +principle that I can no way grant; not only upon the +negative of Holy Scriptures, but of mine own reason, +whereby I can make it probable that the world was as +well peopled in the time of Noah as in ours; and +fifteen hundred years, to people the world, as full a +time for them as four thousand years since have been +to us. There are other assertions and common tenets +drawn from Scripture, and generally believed as Scripture, +whereunto, notwithstanding, I would never betray +the liberty of my reason. ’Tis a paradox to me, that +Methusalem was the longest lived of all the children of +Adam; and no man will be able to prove it; when, +from the process of the text, I can manifest it may be +otherwise. That Judas perished by hanging himself, +there is no certainty in Scripture: though, in one +place, it seems to affirm it, and, by a doubtful word, +hath given occasion to translate<a name="FNanchor_32" id="FNanchor_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> it; yet, in another +place, in a more punctual description, it makes it improbable, +and seems to overthrow it. That our fathers, +after the flood, erected the tower of Babel, to preserve +themselves against a second deluge, is generally opinioned +and believed; yet is there another intention of +theirs expressed in Scripture. Besides, it is improbable, +from the circumstance of the place; that is, a plain in +the land of Shinar. These are no points of faith; and +therefore may admit a free dispute. There are yet +others, and those familiarly concluded from the text, +wherein (under favour) I see no consequence. The +church of Rome confidently proves the opinion of +tutelary angels, from that answer, when Peter knocked +at the door, “’Tis not he, but his angel;” that is, might +some say, his messenger, or somebody from him; for so +the original signifies; and is as likely to be the doubtful +family’s meaning. This exposition I once suggested to +a young divine, that answered upon this point; to +which I remember the Franciscan opponent replied no +more, but, that it was a new, and no authentick interpretation.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 23.—These are but the conclusions and fallible +discourses of man upon the word of God; for such I do +believe the Holy Scriptures; yet, were it of man, I +could not choose but say, it was the singularest and +superlative piece that hath been extant since the creation. +Were I a pagan, I should not refrain the lecture of it; +and cannot but commend the judgment of Ptolemy, that +thought not his library complete without it. The +Alcoran of the Turks (I speak without prejudice) is an +ill-composed piece, containing in it vain and ridiculous +errors in philosophy, impossibilities, fictions, and vanities +beyond laughter, maintained by evident and open sophisms, +the policy of ignorance, deposition of universities, +and banishment of learning. That hath gotten foot by +arms and violence: this, without a blow, hath disseminated +itself through the whole earth. It is not +unremarkable, what Philo first observed, that the law +of Moses continued two thousand years without the +least alteration; whereas, we see, the laws of other +commonwealths do alter with occasions: and even those, +that pretended their original from some divinity, to +have vanished without trace or memory. I believe, +besides Zoroaster, there were divers others that writ +before Moses; who, notwithstanding, have suffered the +common fate of time. Men’s works have an age, like +themselves; and though they outlive their authors, yet +have they a stint and period to their duration. This +only is a work too hard for the teeth of time, and cannot +perish but in the general flames, when all things shall +confess their ashes.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 24.—I have heard some with deep sighs lament +the lost lines of Cicero; others with as many groans +deplore the combustion of the library of Alexandria;<a name="FNanchor_33" id="FNanchor_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a> +for my own part, I think there be too many in the +world; and could with patience behold the urn and +ashes of the Vatican, could I, with a few others, recover +the perished leaves of Solomon. I would not omit a +copy of Enoch’s pillars,<a name="FNanchor_34" id="FNanchor_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> had they many nearer authors +than Josephus, or did not relish somewhat of the fable. +Some men have written more than others have spoken. +Pineda<a name="FNanchor_35" id="FNanchor_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a> quotes more authors, in one work,<a name="FNanchor_VII._7" id="FNanchor_VII._7"></a><a href="#Footnote_VII._7" class="fnanchor">[VII.]</a> than are +necessary in a whole world. Of those three great inventions +in Germany,<a name="FNanchor_36" id="FNanchor_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> there are two which are not without +their incommodities, and ’tis disputable whether they +exceed not their use and commodities. ’Tis not a melancholy +<i>utinam</i> of my own, but the desires of better heads, +that there were a general synod—not to unite the incompatible +difference of religion, but,—for the benefit of +learning, to reduce it, as it lay at first, in a few and solid +authors; and to condemn to the fire those swarms and +millions of rhapsodies, begotten only to distract and +abuse the weaker judgments of scholars, and to maintain +the trade and mystery of typographers.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 25.—I cannot but wonder with what exception +the Samaritans could confine their belief to the Pentateuch, +or five books of Moses. I am ashamed at the +rabbinical interpretation of the Jews upon the Old +Testament,<a name="FNanchor_37" id="FNanchor_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a> as much as their defection from the New: +and truly it is beyond wonder, how that contemptible +and degenerate issue of Jacob, once so devoted to ethnick +superstition, and so easily seduced to the idolatry of +their neighbours, should now, in such an obstinate and +peremptory belief, adhere unto their own doctrine, +expect impossibilities, and in the face and eye of the +church, persist without the least hope of conversion. +This is a vice in them, that were a virtue in us; for +obstinacy in a bad cause is but constancy in a good: +and herein I must accuse those of my own religion; for +there is not any of such a fugitive faith, such an unstable +belief, as a Christian; none that do so often transform +themselves, not unto several shapes of Christianity, and +of the same species, but unto more unnatural and contrary +forms of Jew and Mohammedan; that, from the name +of Saviour, can condescend to the bare term of prophet: +and, from an old belief that he is come, fall to a new +expectation of his coming. It is the promise of Christ, +to make us all one flock: but how and when this union +shall be, is as obscure to me as the last day. Of those +four members of religion we hold a slender proportion.<a name="FNanchor_38" id="FNanchor_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a> +There are, I confess, some new additions; yet +small to those which accrue to our adversaries; and +those only drawn from the revolt of pagans; men but +of negative impieties; and such as deny Christ, but +because they never heard of him. But the religion of +the Jew is expressly against the Christian, and the +Mohammedan against both; for the Turk, in the bulk +he now stands, is beyond all hope of conversion: if he +fall asunder, there may be conceived hopes; but not +without strong improbabilities. The Jew is obstinate in +all fortunes; the persecution of fifteen hundred years +hath but confirmed them in their error. They have +already endured whatsoever may be inflicted: and have +suffered, in a bad cause, even to the condemnation of +their enemies. Persecution is a bad and indirect way +to plant religion. It hath been the unhappy method of +angry devotions, not only to confirm honest religion, but +wicked heresies and extravagant opinions. It was the +first stone and basis of our faith. None can more justly +boast of persecutions, and glory in the number and +valour of martyrs. For, to speak properly, those are +true and almost only examples of fortitude. Those that +are fetched from the field, or drawn from the actions of +the camp, are not ofttimes so truly precedents of valour +as audacity, and, at the best, attain but to some bastard +piece of fortitude. If we shall strictly examine the +circumstances and requisites which Aristotle requires<a name="FNanchor_39" id="FNanchor_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> +to true and perfect valour, we shall find the name only +in his master, Alexander, and as little in that Roman +worthy, Julius Cæsar; and if any, in that easy and +active way, have done so nobly as to deserve that name, +yet, in the passive and more terrible piece, these have +surpassed, and in a more heroical way may claim, the +honour of that title. ’Tis not in the power of every +honest faith to proceed thus far, or pass to heaven +through the flames. Every one hath it not in that full +measure, nor in so audacious and resolute a temper, as +to endure those terrible tests and trials; who, notwithstanding, +in a peaceable way, do truly adore their +Saviour, and have, no doubt, a faith acceptable in the +eyes of God.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 26.—Now, as all that die in the war are not +termed soldiers, so neither can I properly term all those +that suffer in matters of religion, martyrs. The council +of Constance condemns John Huss for a heretick;<a name="FNanchor_40" id="FNanchor_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> +the stories of his own party style him a martyr. He +must needs offend the divinity of both, that says he +was neither the one nor the other. There are many +(questionless) canonized on earth, that shall never be +saints in heaven; and have their names in histories and +martyrologies, who, in the eyes of God, are not so perfect +martyrs as was that wise heathen Socrates, that +suffered on a fundamental point of religion,—the unity +of God. I have often pitied the miserable bishop<a name="FNanchor_41" id="FNanchor_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> +that suffered in the cause of antipodes; yet cannot +choose but accuse him of as much madness, for exposing +his living on such a trifle, as those of ignorance and +folly, that condemned him. I think my conscience will +not give me the lie, if I say there are not many extant, +that, in a noble way, fear the face of death less than +myself; yet, from the moral duty I owe to the commandment +of God, and the natural respect that I tender +unto the conservation of my essence and being, I would +not perish upon a ceremony, politick points, or indifferency: +nor is my belief of that untractable temper as, +not to bow at their obstacles, or connive at matters +wherein there are not manifest impieties. The leaven, +therefore, and ferment of all, not only civil, but religious, +actions, is wisdom; without which, to commit +ourselves to the flames is homicide, and (I fear) but to +pass through one fire into another.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 27.—That miracles are ceased, I can neither +prove nor absolutely deny, much less define the time +and period of their cessation. That they survived +Christ is manifest upon record of Scripture: that they +outlived the apostles also, and were revived at the conversion +of nations, many years after, we cannot deny, if +we shall not question those writers whose testimonies +we do not controvert in points that make for our own +opinions: therefore, that may have some truth in it, that +is reported by the Jesuits of their miracles in the Indies. +I could wish it were true, or had any other testimony +than their own pens. They may easily believe those +miracles abroad, who daily conceive a greater at home—the +transmutation of those visible elements into the +body and blood of our Saviour;—for the conversion of +water into wine, which he wrought in Cana, or, what +the devil would have had him done in the wilderness, +of stones into bread, compared to this, will scarce deserve +the name of a miracle: though, indeed, to speak properly, +there is not one miracle greater than another; +they being the extraordinary effects of the hand of God, +to which all things are of an equal facility; and to +create the world as easy as one single creature. For +this is also a miracle; not only to produce effects +against or above nature, but before nature; and to +create nature, as great a miracle as to contradict or +transcend her. We do too narrowly define the power +of God, restraining it to our capacities. I hold that +God can do all things: how he should work contradictions, +I do not understand, yet dare not, therefore, deny. +I cannot see why the angel of God should question +Esdras to recall the time past, if it were beyond his +own power; or that God should pose mortality in that +which he was not able to perform himself. I will not +say that God cannot, but he will not, perform many +things, which we plainly affirm he cannot. This, I am +sure, is the mannerliest proposition; wherein, notwithstanding, +I hold no paradox: for, strictly, his power is +the same with his will; and they both, with all the rest, +do make but one God.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 28.—Therefore, that miracles have been, I do +believe; that they may yet be wrought by the living, I +do not deny: but have no confidence in those which are +fathered on the dead. And this hath ever made me +suspect the efficacy of relicks, to examine the bones, +question the habits and appertenances of saints, and +even of Christ himself. I cannot conceive why the +cross that Helena<a name="FNanchor_42" id="FNanchor_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> found, and whereon Christ himself +died, should have power to restore others unto life. I +excuse not Constantine from a fall off his horse, or a +mischief from his enemies, upon the wearing those nails +on his bridle which our Saviour bore upon the cross in +his hands. I compute among <i>piæ fraudes</i>, nor many +degrees before consecrated swords and roses, that which +Baldwin, king of Jerusalem, returned the Genoese for +their costs and pains in his wars; to wit, the ashes of +John the Baptist. Those that hold, the sanctity of their +souls doth leave behind a tincture and sacred faculty +on their bodies, speak naturally of miracles, and do not +salve the doubt. Now, one reason I tender so little +devotion unto relicks is, I think the slender and doubtful +respect which I have always held unto antiquities. For +that, indeed, which I admire, is far before antiquity; +that is, Eternity; and that is, God himself; who, though +he be styled the Ancient of Days, cannot receive the +adjunct of antiquity, who was before the world, and +shall be after it, yet is not older than it: for, in his +years there is no climacter:<a name="FNanchor_43" id="FNanchor_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a> his duration is eternity; +and far more venerable than antiquity.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 29.—But, above all things, I wonder how the +curiosity of wiser heads could pass that great and indisputable +miracle, the cessation of oracles; and in what +swoon their reasons lay, to content themselves, and sit +down with such a far-fetched and ridiculous reason as +Plutarch allegeth for it.<a name="FNanchor_44" id="FNanchor_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a> The Jews, that can believe +the supernatural solstice of the sun in the days of +Joshua, have yet the impudence to deny the eclipse, +which every pagan confessed, at his death; but for +this, it is evident beyond all contradiction: the devil +himself confessed it.<a name="FNanchor_VIII._8" id="FNanchor_VIII._8"></a><a href="#Footnote_VIII._8" class="fnanchor">[VIII.]</a> Certainly it is not a warrantable +curiosity, to examine the verity of Scripture by the +concordance of human history; or seek to confirm the +chronicle of Hester or Daniel by the authority of Megasthenes<a name="FNanchor_45" id="FNanchor_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> +or Herodotus. I confess, I have had an unhappy +curiosity this way, till I laughed myself out of +it with a piece of Justin, where he delivers that the +children of Israel, for being scabbed, were banished +out of Egypt. And truly, since I have understood the +occurrences of the world, and know in what counterfeiting +shapes and deceitful visards times present represent +on the stage things past, I do believe them little more +than things to come. Some have been of my own +opinion, and endeavoured to write the history of their +own lives; wherein Moses hath outgone them all, and +left not only the story of his life, but, as some will have +it, of his death also.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 30.—It is a riddle to me, how the story of +oracles hath not wormed out of the world that doubtful +conceit of spirits and witches; how so many learned +heads should so far forget their metaphysicks, and +destroy the ladder and scale of creatures, as to question +the existence of spirits; for my part, I have ever believed, +and do now know, that there are witches. They +that doubt of these do not only deny them, but spirits: +and are obliquely, and upon consequence, a sort, not of +infidels, but atheists. Those that, to confute their incredulity, +desire to see apparitions, shall, questionless, +never behold any, nor have the power to be so much as +witches. The devil hath made them already in a heresy +as capital as witchcraft; and to appear to them were +but to convert them. Of all the delusions wherewith +he deceives mortality, there is not any that puzzleth +me more than the legerdemain of changelings.<a name="FNanchor_46" id="FNanchor_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a> I do +not credit those transformations of reasonable creatures +into beasts, or that the devil hath a power to transpeciate +a man into a horse, who tempted Christ (as a trial of his +divinity) to convert but stones into bread. I could +believe that spirits use with man the act of carnality; +and that in both sexes. I conceive they may assume, +steal, or contrive a body, wherein there may be action +enough to content decrepit lust, or passion to satisfy +more active veneries; yet, in both, without a possibility +of generation: and therefore that opinion, that Antichrist +should be born of the tribe of Dan, by conjunction +with the devil, is ridiculous, and a conceit fitter +for a rabbin than a Christian. I hold that the devil +doth really possess some men; the spirit of melancholy +others; the spirit of delusion others: that, as the devil +is concealed and denied by some, so God and good +angels are pretended by others, whereof the late defection +of the maid of Germany hath left a pregnant +example.<a name="FNanchor_47" id="FNanchor_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 31.—Again, I believe that all that use sorceries, +incantations, and spells, are not witches, or, as we term +them, magicians. I conceive there is a traditional +magick, not learned immediately from the devil, but +at second hand from his scholars, who, having once the +secret betrayed, are able and do empirically practise +without his advice; they both proceeding upon the +principles of nature; where actives, aptly conjoined to +disposed passives, will, under any master, produce their +effects. Thus, I think, at first, a great part of philosophy +was witchcraft; which, being afterward derived to one +another, proved but philosophy, and was indeed no +more than the honest effects of nature:—what invented +by us, is philosophy; learned from him, is magick. +We do surely owe the discovery of many secrets to the +discovery of good and bad angels. I could never pass +that sentence of Paracelsus without an asterisk, or annotation: +“<i>ascendens<a name="FNanchor_IX._9" id="FNanchor_IX._9"></a><a href="#Footnote_IX._9" class="fnanchor">[IX.]</a> constellatum multa revelat quærentibus +magnalia naturæ</i>, i.e. <i>opera Dei</i>.” I do think that +many mysteries ascribed to our own inventions have +been the corteous revelations of spirits; for those noble +essences in heaven bear a friendly regard unto their +fellow-nature on earth; and therefore believe that +those many prodigies and ominous prognosticks, which +forerun the ruins of states, princes, and private persons, +are the charitable premonitions of good angels, which +more careless inquiries term but the effects of chance +and nature.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 32.—Now, besides these particular and divided +spirits, there may be (for aught I know) a universal and +common spirit to the whole world. It was the opinion +of Plato, and is yet of the hermetical philosophers. +If there be a common nature, that unites and ties the +scattered and divided individuals into one species, why +may there not be one that unites them all? However, +I am sure there is a common spirit, that plays within +us, yet makes no part in us; and that is, the spirit of +God; the fire and scintillation of that noble and mighty +essence, which is the life and radical heat of spirits, and +those essences that know not the virtue of the sun; a fire +quite contrary to the fire of hell. This is that gentle +heat that brooded on the waters, and in six days hatched +the world; this is that irradiation that dispels the mists +of hell, the clouds of horror, fear, sorrow, despair; and +preserves the region of the mind in serenity. Whatsoever +feels not the warm gale and gentle ventilation of +this spirit (though I feel his pulse), I dare not say he +lives; for truly without this, to me, there is no heat +under the tropick; nor any light, though I dwelt in +the body of the sun.</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“As when the labouring sun hath wrought his track</div> + <div class="verse">Up to the top of lofty Cancer’s back,</div> + <div class="verse">The icy ocean cracks, the frozen pole</div> + <div class="verse">Thaws with the heat of the celestial coal;</div> + <div class="verse">So when thy absent beams begin t’ impart</div> + <div class="verse">Again a solstice on my frozen heart,</div> + <div class="verse">My winter’s o’er, my drooping spirits sing,</div> + <div class="verse">And every part revives into a spring.</div> + <div class="verse">But if thy quickening beams a while decline,</div> + <div class="verse">And with their light bless not this orb of mine,</div> + <div class="verse">A chilly frost surpriseth every member.</div> + <div class="verse">And in the midst of June I feel December.</div> + <div class="verse">Oh how this earthly temper doth debase</div> + <div class="verse">The noble soul, in this her humble place!</div> + <div class="verse">Whose wingy nature ever doth aspire</div> + <div class="verse">To reach that place whence first it took its fire.</div> + <div class="verse">These flames I feel, which in my heart do dwell,</div> + <div class="verse">Are not thy beams, but take their fire from hell.</div> + <div class="verse">Oh quench them all! and let thy Light divine</div> + <div class="verse">Be as the sun to this poor orb of mine!</div> + <div class="verse">And to thy sacred Spirit convert those fires,</div> + <div class="verse">Whose earthly fumes choke my devout aspires!”</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 33.—Therefore, for spirits, I am so far from +denying their existence, that I could easily believe, that +not only whole countries, but particular persons, have +their tutelary and guardian angels. It is not a new +opinion of the Church of Rome, but an old one of +Pythagoras and Plato: there is no heresy in it: and if +not manifestly defined in Scripture, yet it is an opinion +of a good and wholesome use in the course and actions +of a man’s life; and would serve as an hypothesis to salve +many doubts, whereof common philosophy affordeth no +solution. Now, if you demand my opinion and metaphysicks +of their natures, I confess them very shallow; +most of them in a negative way, like that of God; or +in a comparative, between ourselves and fellow-creatures: +for there is in this universe a stair, or manifest scale, of +creatures, rising not disorderly, or in confusion, but with +a comely method and proportion. Between creatures of +mere existence and things of life there is a large disproportion +of nature: between plants and animals, or creatures +of sense, a wider difference: between them and man, a +far greater: and if the proportion hold on, between man +and angels there should be yet a greater. We do not +comprehend their natures, who retain the first definition +of Porphyry;<a name="FNanchor_48" id="FNanchor_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a> and distinguish them from ourselves by +immortality: for, before his fall, man also was immortal: +yet must we needs affirm that he had a different +essence from the angels. Having, therefore, no certain +knowledge of their nature, ’tis no bad method of the +schools, whatsoever perfection we find obscurely in ourselves, +in a more complete and absolute way to ascribe +unto them. I believe they have an extemporary knowledge, +and, upon the first motion of their reason, do +what we cannot without study or deliberation: that +they know things by their forms, and define, by specifical +difference what we describe by accidents and properties: +and therefore probabilities to us may be +demonstrations unto them: that they have knowledge +not only of the specifical, but numerical, forms of individuals, +and understand by what reserved difference +each single hypostatis (besides the relation to its species) +becomes its numerical self: that, as the soul hath a +power to move the body it informs, so there’s a faculty +to move any, though inform none: ours upon restraint +of time, place, and distance: but that invisible hand +that conveyed Habakkuk to the lion’s den, or Philip to +Azotus, infringeth this rule, and hath a secret conveyance, +wherewith mortality is not acquainted. If they +have that intuitive knowledge, whereby, as in reflection, +they behold the thoughts of one another, I cannot +peremptorily deny but they know a great part of ours. +They that, to refute the invocation of saints, have denied +that they have any knowledge of our affairs below, +have proceeded too far, and must pardon my opinion, +till I can thoroughly answer that piece of Scripture, +“At the conversion of a sinner, the angels in heaven +rejoice.” I cannot, with those in that great father,<a name="FNanchor_49" id="FNanchor_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a> +securely interpret the work of the first day, <i>fiat lux</i>, to +the creation of angels; though I confess there is not +any creature that hath so near a glimpse of their nature +as light in the sun and elements: we style it a bare +accident; but, where it subsists alone, ’tis a spiritual +substance, and may be an angel: in brief, conceive light +invisible, and that is a spirit.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 34.—These are certainly the magisterial and +masterpieces of the Creator; the flower, or, as we may +say, the best part of nothing; actually existing, what +we are but in hopes, and probability. We are only that +amphibious piece, between a corporeal and a spiritual +essence; that middle form, that links those two together, +and makes good the method of God and nature, +that jumps not from extremes, but unites the incompatible +distances by some middle and participating +natures. That we are the breath and similitude of God, +it is indisputable, and upon record of Holy Scripture: +but to call ourselves a microcosm, or little world, I +thought it only a pleasant trope of rhetorick, till my +near judgment and second thoughts told me there was +a real truth therein. For, first we are a rude mass, and +in the rank of creatures which only are, and have a dull +kind of being, not yet privileged with life, or preferred +to sense or reason; next we live the life of plants, the +life of animals, the life of men, and at last the life of +spirits: running on, in one mysterious nature, those five +kinds of existencies, which comprehend the creatures, +not only of the world, but of the universe. Thus is +man that great and true <i>amphibium</i>, whose nature is +disposed to live, not only like other creatures in divers +elements, but in divided and distinguished worlds; for +though there be but one to sense, there are two to reason, +the one visible, the other invisible; whereof Moses +seems to have left description, and of the other so +obscurely, that some parts thereof are yet in controversy. +And truly, for the first chapters of Genesis, I must confess +a great deal of obscurity; though divines have, to +the power of human reason, endeavoured to make all +go in a literal meaning, yet those allegorical interpretations +are also probable, and perhaps the mystical method +of Moses, bred up in the hieroglyphical schools of the +Egyptians.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 35.—Now for that immaterial world, methinks +we need not wander so far as the first moveable; for, +even in this material fabrick, the spirits walk as freely +exempt from the affection of time, place, and motion, as +beyond the extremest circumference. Do but extract +from the corpulency of bodies, or resolve things beyond +their first matter, and you discover the habitation of +angels; which if I call the ubiquitary and omnipresent +essence of God, I hope I shall not offend divinity: for, +before the creation of the world, God was really all +things. For the angels he created no new world, or +determinate mansion, and therefore they are everywhere +where is his essence, and do live, at a distance even, in +himself. That God made all things for man, is in some +sense true; yet, not so far as to subordinate the creation +of those purer creatures unto ours; though, as ministering +spirits, they do, and are willing to fulfil the will of +God in these lower and sublunary affairs of man. God +made all things for himself; and it is impossible he +should make them for any other end than his own glory: +it is all he can receive, and all that is without himself. +For, honour being an external adjunct, and in the +honourer rather than in the person honoured, it was +necessary to make a creature, from whom he might receive +this homage: and that is, in the other world, +angels, in this, man; which when we neglect, we forget +God, not only to repent that he hath made the world, +but that he hath sworn he would not destroy it. That +there is but one world, is a conclusion of faith; Aristotle +with all his philosophy hath not been able to prove it: +and as weakly that the world was eternal; that dispute +much troubled the pen of the philosophers, but Moses +decided that question, and all is salved with the +new term of a creation,—that is, a production of something +out of nothing. And what is that?—whatsoever +is opposite to something; or, more exactly, that which +is truly contrary unto God: for he only is; all others +have an existence with dependency, and are something +but by a distinction. And herein is divinity conformant +unto philosophy, and generation not only founded on +contrarieties, but also creation. God, being all things, +is contrary unto nothing; out of which were made all +things, and so nothing became something, and omneity<a name="FNanchor_50" id="FNanchor_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> +informed nullity into an essence.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 36.—The whole creation is a mystery, and particularly +that of man. At the blast of his mouth were +the rest of the creatures made; and at his bare word +they started out of nothing: but in the frame of man +(as the text describes it) he played the sensible operator, +and seemed not so much to create as make him. When +he had separated the materials of other creatures, there +consequently resulted a form and soul; but, having +raised the walls of man, he was driven to a second and +harder creation,—of a substance like himself, an incorruptible +and immortal soul. For these two affections +we have the philosophy and opinion of the heathens, +the flat affirmative of Plato, and not a negative from +Aristotle. There is another scruple cast in by divinity +concerning its production, much disputed in the German +auditories, and with that indifferency and equality of +arguments, as leave the controversy undetermined. I +am not of Paracelsus’s mind, that boldly delivers a receipt +to make a man without conjunction; yet cannot +but wonder at the multitude of heads that do deny +traduction, having no other arguments to confirm their +belief than that rhetorical sentence and <i>antimetathesis</i><a name="FNanchor_51" id="FNanchor_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a> +of Augustine, “<i>creando infunditur, infundendo creatur</i>.” +Either opinion will consist well enough with religion: +yet I should rather incline to this, did not one objection +haunt me, not wrung from speculations and subtleties, +but from common sense and observation; not pick’d +from the leaves of any author, but bred amongst the +weeds and tares of my own brain. And this is a conclusion +from the equivocal and monstrous productions +in the copulation of a man with a beast: for if the soul +of man be not transmitted and transfused in the seed of +the parents, why are not those productions merely +beasts, but have also an impression and tincture of +reason in as high a measure, as it can evidence itself in +those improper organs? Nor, truly, can I peremptorily +deny that the soul, in this her sublunary estate, is +wholly, and in all acceptions, inorganical: but that, +for the performance of her ordinary actions, is required +not only a symmetry and proper disposition of organs, +but a crasis and temper correspondent to its operations; +yet is not this mass of flesh and visible structure the +instrument and proper corpse of the soul, but rather of +sense, and that the hand of reason. In our study of +anatomy there is a mass of mysterious philosophy, and +such as reduced the very heathens to divinity; yet, +amongst all those rare discoveries and curious pieces I +find in the fabrick of man, I do not so much content +myself, as in that I find not,—that is, no organ or +instrument for the rational soul; for in the brain, +which we term the seat of reason, there is not anything +of moment more than I can discover in the crany of a +beast; and this is a sensible and no inconsiderable +argument of the inorganity of the soul, at least in that +sense we usually so conceive it. Thus we are men, and +we know not how; there is something in us that can +be without us, and will be after us, though it is strange +that it hath no history what it was before us, nor cannot +tell how it entered in us.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 37.—Now, for these walls of flesh, wherein the +soul doth seem to be immured before the resurrection, +it is nothing but an elemental composition, and a +fabrick that must fall to ashes. “All flesh is grass,” is +not only metaphorically, but literally, true; for all +those creatures we behold are but the herbs of the field, +digested into flesh in them, or more remotely carnified +in ourselves. Nay, further, we are what we all abhor, +<i>anthropophagi</i>, and cannibals, devourers not only of men, +but of ourselves; and that not in an allegory but a +positive truth: for all this mass of flesh which we behold, +came in at our mouths: this frame we look upon, +hath been upon our trenchers; in brief, we have devoured +ourselves. I cannot believe the wisdom of Pythagoras +did ever positively, and in a literal sense, affirm his +metempsychosis, or impossible transmigration of the +souls of men into beasts. Of all metamorphoses or +transmigrations, I believe only one, that is of Lot’s +wife; for that of Nabuchodonosor proceeded not so far. +In all others I conceive there is no further verity than +is contained in their implicit sense and morality. I +believe that the whole frame of a beast doth perish, and +is left in the same state after death as before it was +materialled unto life: that the souls of men know +neither contrary nor corruption; that they subsist beyond +the body, and outlive death by the privilege of +their proper natures, and without a miracle: that the +souls of the faithful, as they leave earth, take possession +of heaven; that those apparitions and ghosts of departed +persons are not the wandering souls of men, but the +unquiet walks of devils, prompting and suggesting us +unto mischief, blood, and villany; instilling and stealing +into our hearts that the blessed spirits are not at +rest in their graves, but wander, solicitous of the affairs +of the world. But that those phantasms appear often, +and do frequent cemeteries, charnel-houses, and churches, +it is because those are the dormitories of the dead, where +the devil, like an insolent champion, beholds with pride +the spoils and trophies of his victory over Adam.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 38.—This is that dismal conquest we all deplore, +that makes us so often cry, O Adam, <i>quid fecisti?</i> I +thank God I have not those strait ligaments, or narrow +obligations to the world, as to dote on life, or be convulsed +and tremble at the name of death. Not that I +am insensible of the dread and horror thereof; or, by +raking into the bowels of the deceased, continual sight +of anatomies, skeletons, or cadaverous relicks, like vespilloes, +or gravemakers, I am become stupid, or have +forgot the apprehension of mortality; but that, marshalling +all the horrors, and contemplating the extremities +thereof, I find not anything therein able to daunt the +courage of a man, much less a well-resolved Christian; +and therefore am not angry at the error of our first +parents, or unwilling to bear a part of this common +fate, and, like the best of them, to die; that is, to +cease to breathe, to take a farewell of the elements; to +be a kind of nothing for a moment; to be within one +instant of a spirit. When I take a full view and circle +of myself without this reasonable moderator, and equal +piece of justice, death, I do conceive myself the miserablest +person extant. Were there not another life that +I hope for, all the vanities of this world should not +entreat a moment’s breath from me. Could the devil +work my belief to imagine I could never die, I would +not outlive that very thought. I have so abject a conceit +of this common way of existence, this retaining to +the sun and elements, I cannot think this is to be a +man, or to live according to the dignity of humanity. +In expectation of a better, I can with patience embrace +this life; yet, in my best meditations, do often defy +death. I honour any man that contemns it; nor can I +highly love any that is afraid of it: this makes me +naturally love a soldier, and honour those tattered and +contemptible regiments, that will die at the command +of a sergeant. For a pagan there may be some motives +to be in love with life; but, for a Christian to be amazed +at death, I see not how he can escape this dilemma—that +he is too sensible of this life, or hopeless of the +life to come.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 39.—Some divines<a name="FNanchor_52" id="FNanchor_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a> count Adam thirty years +old at his creation, because they suppose him created in +the perfect age and stature of man: and surely we are +all out of the computation of our age; and every man +is some months older than he bethinks him; for we +live, move, have a being, and are subject to the actions +of the elements, and the malice of diseases, in that other +world, the truest microcosm, the womb of our mother; +for besides that general and common existence we are +conceived to hold in our chaos, and whilst we sleep +within the bosom of our causes, we enjoy a being and +life in three distinct worlds, wherein we receive most +manifest gradations. In that obscure world, the womb +of our mother, our time is short, computed by the +moon; yet longer than the days of many creatures that +behold the sun; ourselves being not yet without life, +sense, and reason;<a name="FNanchor_53" id="FNanchor_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a> though, for the manifestation of +its actions, it awaits the opportunity of objects, and +seems to live there but in its root and soul of vegetation. +Entering afterwards upon the scene of the world, we +arise up and become another creature; performing the +reasonable actions of man, and obscurely manifesting +that part of divinity in us, but not in complement and +perfection, till we have once more cast our secundine, +that is, this slough of flesh, and are delivered into the +last world, that is, that ineffable place of Paul, that +proper <i>ubi</i> of spirits. The smattering I have of the +philosopher’s stone (which is something more than the +perfect exaltation<a name="FNanchor_54" id="FNanchor_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> of gold) hath taught me a great deal +of divinity, and instructed my belief, how that immortal +spirit and incorruptible substance of my soul may lie +obscure, and sleep a while within this house of flesh. +Those strange and mystical transmigrations that I have +observed in silkworms turned my philosophy into +divinity. There is in these works of nature, which +seem to puzzle reason, something divine; and hath +more in it than the eye of a common spectator doth +discover.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 40.—I am naturally bashful; nor hath conversation, +age, or travel, been able to effront or enharden +me; yet I have one part of modesty, which I have +seldom discovered in another, that is (to speak truly), +I am not so much afraid of death as ashamed thereof; +’tis the very disgrace and ignominy of our natures, that +in a moment can so disfigure us, that our nearest +friends, wife, and children, stand afraid, and start at us. +The birds and beasts of the field, that before, in a +natural fear, obeyed us, forgetting all allegiance, begin +to prey upon us. This very conceit hath, in a tempest, +disposed and left me willing to be swallowed up in the +abyss of waters, wherein I had perished unseen, unpitied, +without wondering eyes, tears of pity, lectures +of mortality, and none had said, “<i>Quantum mutatus ab +illo!</i>” Not that I am ashamed of the anatomy of my +parts, or can accuse nature of playing the bungler in +any part of me, or my own vicious life for contracting +any shameful disease upon me, whereby I might not +call myself as wholesome a morsel for the worms as +any.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 41.—Some, upon the courage of a fruitful issue, +wherein, as in the truest chronicle, they seem to outlive +themselves, can with greater patience away with death. +This conceit and counterfeit subsisting in our progenies +seems to be a mere fallacy, unworthy the desire of a +man, that can but conceive a thought of the next world; +who, in a nobler ambition, should desire to live in his +substance in heaven, rather than his name and shadow +in the earth. And therefore, at my death, I mean to +take a total adieu of the world, not caring for a monument, +history, or epitaph; not so much as the bare +memory of my name to be found anywhere, but in the +universal register of God. I am not yet so cynical, as +to approve the testament of Diogenes,<a name="FNanchor_X._10" id="FNanchor_X._10"></a><a href="#Footnote_X._10" class="fnanchor">[X.]</a> nor do I altogether +allow that rodomontado of Lucan;<a name="FNanchor_XI._11" id="FNanchor_XI._11"></a><a href="#Footnote_XI._11" class="fnanchor">[XI.]</a></p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">——“<i>Cœlo tegitur, qui non habet urnam.</i>”</div> +</div></div></div> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">He that unburied lies wants not his hearse;</div> + <div class="verse">For unto him a tomb’s the universe.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>but commend, in my calmer judgment, those ingenuous +intentions that desire to sleep by the urns of their +fathers, and strive to go the neatest way unto corruption. +I do not envy the temper<a name="FNanchor_55" id="FNanchor_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> of crows and daws, nor the +numerous and weary days of our fathers before the +flood. If there be any truth in astrology, I may outlive +a jubilee;<a name="FNanchor_56" id="FNanchor_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a> as yet I have not seen one revolution of +Saturn,<a name="FNanchor_57" id="FNanchor_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a> nor hath my pulse beat thirty years, and yet, +excepting one,<a name="FNanchor_58" id="FNanchor_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a> have seen the ashes of, and left under +ground, all the kings of Europe; have been contemporary +to three emperors, four grand signiors, and as +many popes: methinks I have outlived myself, and +begin to be weary of the sun; I have shaken hands with +delight in my warm blood and canicular days; I +perceive I do anticipate the vices of age; the world to +me is but a dream or mock-show, and we all therein but +pantaloons and anticks, to my severer contemplations.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 42.—It is not, I confess, an unlawful prayer to +desire to surpass the days of our Saviour, or wish to +outlive that age wherein he thought fittest to die; yet, if +(as divinity affirms) there shall be no grey hairs in heaven, +but all shall rise in the perfect state of men, we do +but outlive those perfections in this world, to be recalled +unto them by a greater miracle in the next, and run on +here but to be retrograde hereafter. Were there any +hopes to outlive vice, or a point to be superannuated +from sin, it were worthy our knees to implore the days +of Methuselah. But age doth not rectify, but incurvate +our natures, turning bad dispositions into worser habits, +and (like diseases) brings on incurable vices; for every +day, as we grow weaker in age, we grow stronger in sin, +and the number of our days doth but make our sins +innumerable. The same vice, committed at sixteen, is +not the same, though it agrees in all other circumstances, +as at forty; but swells and doubles from the +circumstance of our ages, wherein, besides the constant +and inexcusable habit of transgressing, the maturity of +our judgment cuts off pretence unto excuse or pardon. +Every sin, the oftener it is committed, the more it +acquireth in the quality of evil; as it succeeds in time, +so it proceeds in degrees of badness; for as they proceed +they ever multiply, and, like figures in arithmetick, the +last stands for more than all that went before it. And, +though I think no man can live well once, but he that +could live twice, yet, for my own part, I would not live +over my hours past, or begin again the thread of my +days; not upon Cicero’s ground,<a name="FNanchor_XII._12" id="FNanchor_XII._12"></a><a href="#Footnote_XII._12" class="fnanchor">[XII.]</a> because I have lived +them well, but for fear I should live them worse. I +find my growing judgment daily instruct me how to +be better, but my untamed affections and confirmed +vitiosity make me daily do worse. I find in my confirmed +age the same sins I discovered in my youth; I +committed many then because I was a child; and, +because I commit them still, I am yet an infant. +Therefore I perceive a man may be twice a child, +before the days of dotage; and stand in need of Æson’s +bath<a name="FNanchor_59" id="FNanchor_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a> before threescore.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 43.—And truly there goes a deal of providence +to produce a man’s life unto threescore; there is more +required than an able temper for those years: though +the radical humour contain in it sufficient oil for seventy, +yet I perceive in some it gives no light past thirty: men +assign not all the causes of long life, that write whole +books thereof. They that found themselves on the +radical balsam, or vital sulphur of the parts, determine +not why Abel lived not so long as Adam. There is +therefore a secret gloom or bottom of our days: ’twas +his wisdom to determine them: but his perpetual and +waking providence that fulfils and accomplisheth them; +wherein the spirits, ourselves, and all the creatures of +God, in a secret and disputed way, do execute his will. +Let them not therefore complain of immaturity that die +about thirty: they fall but like the whole world, whose +solid and well-composed substance must not expect the +duration and period of its constitution: when all things +are completed in it, its age is accomplished; and the +last and general fever may as naturally destroy it before +six thousand,<a name="FNanchor_60" id="FNanchor_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a> as me before forty. There is therefore +some other hand that twines the thread of life than that +of nature: we are not only ignorant in antipathies and +occult qualities; our ends are as obscure as our beginnings; +the line of our days is drawn by night, and the +various effects therein by a pencil that is invisible; +wherein, though we confess our ignorance, I am sure +we do not err if we say, it is the hand of God.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 44.—I am much taken with two verses of Lucan, +since I have been able not only, as we do at school, to +construe, but understand:</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“<i>Victurosque Dei celant ut vivere durent,</i></div> + <div class="verse"><i>Felix esse mori.</i>”<a name="FNanchor_XIII._13" id="FNanchor_XIII._13"></a><a href="#Footnote_XIII._13" class="fnanchor">[XIII.]</a></div> +</div></div></div> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">We’re all deluded, vainly searching ways</div> + <div class="verse">To make us happy by the length of days;</div> + <div class="verse">For cunningly, to make’s protract this breath,</div> + <div class="verse">The gods conceal the happiness of death.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>There be many excellent strains in that poet, wherewith +his stoical genius hath liberally supplied him: +and truly there are singular pieces in the philosophy +of Zeno,<a name="FNanchor_61" id="FNanchor_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> and doctrine of the stoics, which I perceive, +delivered in a pulpit, pass for current divinity: yet +herein are they in extremes, that can allow a man to be +his own assassin, and so highly extol the end and suicide +of Cato. This is indeed not to fear death, but yet to be +afraid of life. It is a brave act of valour to contemn +death; but, where life is more terrible than death, it +is then the truest valour to dare to live: and herein +religion hath taught us a noble example; for all the +valiant acts of Curtius, Scævola, or Codrus, do not +parallel, or match, that one of Job; and sure there is +no torture to the rack of a disease, nor any poniards in +death itself, like those in the way or prologue unto it. +“<i>Emori nolo, sed me esse mortuum nihil curo</i>;” I would +not die, but care not to be dead. Were I of Cæsar’s +religion,<a name="FNanchor_62" id="FNanchor_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> I should be of his desires, and wish rather to +go off at one blow, than to be sawed in pieces by the +grating torture of a disease. Men that look no further +than their outsides, think health an appurtenance unto +life, and quarrel with their constitutions for being sick; +but I, that have examined the parts of man, and know +upon what tender filaments that fabrick hangs, do +wonder that we are not always so; and, considering the +thousand doors that lead to death, do thank my God +that we can die but once. ’Tis not only the mischief +of diseases, and the villany of poisons, that make an +end of us; we vainly accuse the fury of guns, and the +new inventions of death:—it is in the power of every +hand to destroy us, and we are beholden unto every +one we meet, he doth not kill us. There is therefore +but one comfort left, that though it be in the power of +the weakest arm to take away life, it is not in the +strongest to deprive us of death. God would not exempt +himself from that; the misery of immortality +in the flesh he undertook not, that was immortal. +Certainly there is no happiness within this circle of +flesh; nor is it in the opticks of these eyes to behold +felicity. The first day of our jubilee is death; the +devil hath therefore failed of his desires; we are happier +with death than we should have been without it: +there is no misery but in himself, where there is no +end of misery; and so indeed, in his own sense, the +stoic is in the right.<a name="FNanchor_63" id="FNanchor_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a> He forgets that he can die, who +complains of misery: we are in the power of no calamity +while death is in our own.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 45.—Now, besides this literal and positive kind +of death, there are others whereof divines make mention, +and those, I think, not merely metaphorical, as +mortification, dying unto sin and the world. Therefore, +I say, every man hath a double horoscope; one of +his humanity,—his birth, another of his Christianity,—his +baptism: and from this do I compute or calculate +my nativity; not reckoning those <i>horæ combustæ</i>,<a name="FNanchor_64" id="FNanchor_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a> and +odd days, or esteeming myself anything, before I was +my Saviour’s and enrolled in the register of Christ. +Whosoever enjoys not this life, I count him but an +apparition, though he wear about him the sensible +affections of flesh. In these moral acceptions, the way +to be immortal is to die daily; nor can I think I have +the true theory of death, when I contemplate a skull or +behold a skeleton with those vulgar imaginations it +casts upon us. I have therefore enlarged that common +<i>memento mori</i> into a more Christian memorandum, +<i>memento quatuor novissima</i>,—those four inevitable +points of us all, death, judgment, heaven, and hell. +Neither did the contemplations of the heathens rest in +their graves, without a further thought, of Rhadamanth<a name="FNanchor_65" id="FNanchor_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a> +or some judicial proceeding after death, though +in another way, and upon suggestion of their natural +reasons. I cannot but marvel from what sibyl or oracle +they stole the prophecy of the world’s destruction by +fire, or whence Lucan learned to say—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“<i>Communis mundo superest rogus, ossibus astra</i></div> + <div class="verse"><i>Misturus——</i>”<a name="FNanchor_XIV._14" id="FNanchor_XIV._14"></a><a href="#Footnote_XIV._14" class="fnanchor">[XIV.]</a></div> +</div></div></div> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">There yet remains to th’ world one common fire,</div> + <div class="verse">Wherein our bones with stars shall make one pyre.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>I believe the world grows near its end; yet is neither +old nor decayed, nor will ever perish upon the ruins of +its own principles. As the work of creation was above +nature, so its adversary, annihilation; without which +the world hath not its end, but its mutation. Now, +what force should be able to consume it thus far, without +the breath of God, which is the truest consuming +flame, my philosophy cannot inform me. Some believe +there went not a minute to the world’s creation, nor +shall there go to its destruction; those six days, so +punctually described, make not to them one moment, +but rather seem to manifest the method and idea of +that great work of the intellect of God than the manner +how he proceeded in its operation. I cannot dream that +there should be at the last day any such judicial proceeding, +or calling to the bar, as indeed the Scripture +seems to imply, and the literal commentators do conceive: +for unspeakable mysteries in the Scriptures are +often delivered in a vulgar and illustrative way, and, +being written unto man, are delivered, not as they truly +are, but as they may be understood; wherein, notwithstanding, +the different interpretations according to different +capacities may stand firm with our devotion, nor +be any way prejudicial to each single edification.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 46.—Now, to determine the day and year of this +inevitable time, is not only convincible and statute +madness, but also manifest impiety. How shall we +interpret Elias’s six thousand years, or imagine the +secret communicated to a Rabbi which God hath denied +unto his angels? It had been an excellent quære +to have posed the devil of Delphos, and must needs +have forced him to some strange amphibology. It hath +not only mocked the predictions of sundry astrologers +in ages past, but the prophecies of many melancholy +heads in these present; who, neither understanding +reasonably things past nor present, pretend a knowledge +of things to come; heads ordained only to manifest +the incredible effects of melancholy and to fulfil old +prophecies,<a name="FNanchor_XV._15" id="FNanchor_XV._15"></a><a href="#Footnote_XV._15" class="fnanchor">[XV.]</a> rather than be the authors of new. “In +those days there shall come wars and rumours of wars” +to me seems no prophecy, but a constant truth in all +times verified since it was pronounced. “There shall +be signs in the moon and stars;” how comes he then +like a thief in the night, when he gives an item of his +coming? That common sign, drawn from the revelation +of antichrist, is as obscure as any; in our common +compute he hath been come these many years; but, +for my own part, to speak freely, I am half of opinion +that antichrist is the philosopher’s stone in divinity, for +the discovery and invention whereof, though there be +prescribed rules, and probable inductions, yet hath +hardly any man attained the perfect discovery thereof. +That general opinion, that the world grows near its +end, hath possessed all ages past as nearly as ours. I +am afraid that the souls that now depart cannot escape +that lingering expostulation of the saints under the +altar, “<i>quousque, Domine?</i>” how long, O Lord? and groan +in the expectation of the great jubilee.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 47.—This is the day that must make good that +great attribute of God, his justice; that must reconcile +those unanswerable doubts that torment the wisest +understandings; and reduce those seeming inequalities +and respective distributions in this world, to an equality +and recompensive justice in the next. This is that one +day, that shall include and comprehend all that went +before it; wherein, as in the last scene, all the actors +must enter, to complete and make up the catastrophe of +this great piece. This is the day whose memory hath, +only, power to make us honest in the dark, and to be +virtuous without a witness. “<i>Ipsa sui pretium virtus sibi</i>,” +that virtue is her own reward, is but a cold principle, +and not able to maintain our variable resolutions in a +constant and settled way of goodness. I have practised +that honest artifice of Seneca,<a name="FNanchor_66" id="FNanchor_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a> and, in my retired and +solitary imaginations to detain me from the foulness of +vice, have fancied to myself the presence of my dear and +worthiest friends, before whom I should lose my head +rather than be vicious; yet herein I found that there +was nought but moral honesty; and this was not to be +virtuous for his sake who must reward us at the last. I +have tried if I could reach that great resolution of his, +to be honest without a thought of heaven or hell; and, +indeed I found, upon a natural inclination, and inbred +loyalty unto virtue, that I could serve her without a +livery, yet not in that resolved and venerable way, but +that the frailty of my nature, upon an easy temptation, +might be induced to forget her. The life, therefore, and +spirit of all our actions is the resurrection, and a stable +apprehension that our ashes shall enjoy the fruit of our +pious endeavours; without this, all religion is a fallacy, +and those impieties of Lucian, Euripides, and Julian, are +no blasphemies, but subtile verities; and atheists have +been the only philosophers.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 48.—How shall the dead arise, is no question of +my faith; to believe only possibilities is not faith, but +mere philosophy. Many things are true in divinity, +which are neither inducible by reason nor confirmable +by sense; and many things in philosophy confirmable +by sense, yet not inducible by reason. Thus it is impossible, +by any solid or demonstrative reasons, to persuade +a man to believe the conversion of the needle to +the north; though this be possible and true, and easily +credible, upon a single experiment unto the sense. I +believe that our estranged and divided ashes shall unite +again; that our separated dust, after so many pilgrimages +and transformations into the parts of minerals, +plants, animals, elements, shall, at the voice of God, +return into their primitive shapes, and join again to +make up their primary and predestinate forms. As at +the creation there was a separation of that confused +mass into its pieces; so at the destruction thereof there +shall be a separation into its distinct individuals. As, +at the creation of the world, all the distinct species that +we behold lay involved in one mass, till the fruitful +voice of God separated this united multitude into its +several species, so, at the last day, when those corrupted +relicks shall be scattered in the wilderness of forms, and +seem to have forgot their proper habits, God, by a powerful +voice, shall command them back into their proper +shapes, and call them out by their single individuals. +Then shall appear the fertility of Adam, and the magick +of that sperm that hath dilated into so many millions. +I have often beheld, as a miracle, that artificial resurrection +and revivification of mercury, how being mortified +into a thousand shapes, it assumes again its own, +and returns into its numerical self. Let us speak +naturally, and like philosophers. The forms of alterable +bodies in these sensible corruptions perish not; +nor, as we imagine, wholly quit their mansions; but +retire and contract themselves into their secret and +unaccessible parts; where they may best protect themselves +from the action of their antagonist. A plant or +vegetable consumed to ashes to a contemplative and +school-philosopher seems utterly destroyed, and the +form to have taken his leave for ever; but to a sensible +artist the forms are not perished, but withdrawn into +their incombustible part, where they lie secure from the +action of that devouring element. This is made good +by experience, which can from the ashes of a plant +revive the plant, and from its cinders recall it into its +stalk and leaves again.<a name="FNanchor_67" id="FNanchor_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a> What the art of man can do +in these inferior pieces, what blasphemy is it to affirm +the finger of God cannot do in those more perfect and +sensible structures? This is that mystical philosophy, +from whence no true scholar becomes an atheist, but +from the visible effects of nature grows up a real +divine, and beholds not in a dream, as Ezekiel, but +in an ocular and visible object, the types of his resurrection.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 49.—Now, the necessary mansions of our restored +selves are those two contrary and incompatible places +we call heaven and hell. To define them, or strictly to +determine what and where these are, surpasseth my +divinity. That elegant apostle, which seemed to have +a glimpse of heaven, hath left but a negative description +thereof; which “neither eye hath seen, nor ear hath +heard, nor can enter into the heart of man:” he was +translated out of himself to behold it; but, being returned +into himself, could not express it. Saint John’s +description by emeralds, chrysolites, and precious stones, +is too weak to express the material heaven we behold. +Briefly, therefore, where the soul hath the full measure +and complement of happiness; where the boundless +appetite of that spirit remains completely satisfied that +it can neither desire addition nor alteration; that, I +think, is truly heaven: and this can only be in the +enjoyment of that essence, whose infinite goodness is +able to terminate the desires of itself, and the unsatiable +wishes of ours. Wherever God will thus manifest himself, +there is heaven, though within the circle of this +sensible world. Thus, the soul of man may be in +heaven anywhere, even within the limits of his own +proper body; and when it ceaseth to live in the body it +may remain in its own soul, that is, its Creator. And +thus we may say that Saint Paul, whether in the body +or out of the body, was yet in heaven. To place it in +the empyreal, or beyond the tenth sphere, is to forget +the world’s destruction; for when this sensible world +shall be destroyed, all shall then be here as it is now +there, an empyreal heaven, a <i>quasi</i> vacuity; when to +ask where heaven is, is to demand where the presence of +God is, or where we have the glory of that happy +vision. Moses, that was bred up in all the learning of +the Egyptians, committed a gross absurdity in philosophy, +when with these eyes of flesh he desired to see God, +and petitioned his Maker, that is truth itself, to a contradiction. +Those that imagine heaven and hell neighbours, +and conceive a vicinity between those two extremes, +upon consequence of the parable, where Dives discoursed +with Lazarus, in Abraham’s bosom, do too grossly conceive +of those glorified creatures, whose eyes shall easily +out-see the sun, and behold without perspective the +extremest distances: for if there shall be, in our glorified +eyes, the faculty of sight and reception of objects, +I could think the visible species there to be in as unlimitable +a way as now the intellectual. I grant that +two bodies placed beyond the tenth sphere, or in a +vacuity, according to Aristotle’s philosophy, could not +behold each other, because there wants a body or +medium to hand and transport the visible rays of the +object unto the sense; but when there shall be a general +defect of either medium to convey, or light to prepare +and dispose that medium, and yet a perfect vision, we +must suspend the rules of our philosophy, and make all +good by a more absolute piece of opticks.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 50.—I cannot tell how to say that fire is the +essence of hell; I know not what to make of purgatory, +or conceive a flame that can either prey upon, or purify +the substance of a soul. Those flames of sulphur, mentioned +in the scriptures, I take not to be understood of +this present hell, but of that to come, where fire shall +make up the complement of our tortures, and have a +body or subject whereon to manifest its tyranny. Some +who have had the honour to be textuary in divinity are +of opinion it shall be the same specifical fire with ours. +This is hard to conceive, yet can I make good how even +that may prey upon our bodies, and yet not consume +us: for in this material world, there are bodies that +persist invincible in the powerfulest flames; and though, +by the action of fire, they fall into ignition and liquation, +yet will they never suffer a destruction. I would gladly +know how Moses, with an actual fire, calcined or burnt +the golden calf into powder: for that mystical metal of +gold, whose solary and celestial nature I admire, exposed +unto the violence of fire, grows only hot, and +liquefies, but consumeth not; so when the consumable +and volatile pieces of our bodies shall be refined into a +more impregnable and fixed temper, like gold, though +they suffer from the action of flames, they shall never +perish, but lie immortal in the arms of fire. And +surely, if this flame must suffer only by the action of +this element, there will many bodies escape; and not +only heaven, but earth will not be at an end, but +rather a beginning. For at present it is not earth, but +a composition of fire, water, earth, and air; but at that +time, spoiled of these ingredients, it shall appear in a +substance more like itself, its ashes. Philosophers that +opinioned the world’s destruction by fire, did never +dream of annihilation, which is beyond the power of +sublunary causes; for the last and proper action of that +element is but vitrification, or a reduction of a body into +glass; and therefore some of our chymicks facetiously +affirm, that, at the last fire, all shall be crystalized and +reverberated into glass, which is the utmost action of +that element. Nor need we fear this term, annihilation, +or wonder that God will destroy the works of his creation: +for man subsisting, who is, and will then truly +appear, a microcosm, the world cannot be said to be +destroyed. For the eyes of God, and perhaps also of +our glorified selves, shall as really behold and contemplate +the world, in its epitome or contracted essence, as +now it doth at large and in its dilated substance. In +the seed of a plant, to the eyes of God, and to the understanding +of man, there exists, though in an invisible +way, the perfect leaves, flowers, and fruit thereof; for +things that are in <i>posse</i> to the sense, are actually existent +to the understanding. Thus God beholds all things, +who contemplates as fully his works in their epitome +as in their full volume, and beheld as amply the whole +world, in that little compendium of the sixth day, as +in the scattered and dilated pieces of those five before.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 51.—Men commonly set forth the torments of hell +by fire, and the extremity of corporal afflictions, and +describe hell in the same method that Mahomet doth +heaven. This indeed makes a noise, and drums in +popular ears: but if this be the terrible piece thereof, it +is not worthy to stand in diameter with heaven, whose +happiness consists in that part that is best able to comprehend +it, that immortal essence, that translated divinity +and colony of God, the soul. Surely, though we place +hell under earth, the devil’s walk and purlieu is about +it. Men speak too popularly who place it in those +flaming mountains, which to grosser apprehensions represent +hell. The heart of man is the place the devils +dwell in; I feel sometimes a hell within myself; +Lucifer keeps his court in my breast; Legion is revived +in me. There are as many hells as Anaxagoras<a name="FNanchor_68" id="FNanchor_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> +conceited worlds. There was more than one hell +in Magdalene, when there were seven devils; for every +devil is an hell unto himself,<a name="FNanchor_69" id="FNanchor_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a> he holds enough of +torture in his own <i>ubi</i>; and needs not the misery of circumference +to afflict him: and thus, a distracted conscience +here is a shadow or introduction unto hell hereafter. +Who can but pity the merciful intention of those +hands that do destroy themselves? The devil, were it +in his power, would do the like; which being impossible, +his miseries are endless, and he suffers most +in that attribute wherein he is impassible, his immortality.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 52.—I thank God, and with joy I mention it, I +was never afraid of hell, nor ever grew pale at the +description of that place. I have so fixed my contemplations +on heaven, that I have almost forgot the idea of +hell; and am afraid rather to lose the joys of the one, +than endure the misery of the other: to be deprived of +them is a perfect hell, and needs methinks no addition +to complete our afflictions. That terrible term hath +never detained me from sin, nor do I owe any good +action to the name thereof. I fear God, yet am not +afraid of him; his mercies make me ashamed of my +sins, before his judgments afraid thereof: these are the +forced and secondary method of his wisdom, which he +useth but as the last remedy, and upon provocation;—a +course rather to deter the wicked, than incite the +virtuous to his worship. I can hardly think there was +ever any scared into heaven: they go the fairest way to +heaven that would serve God without a hell: other +mercenaries, that crouch unto him in fear of hell, though +they term themselves the servants, are indeed but the +slaves, of the Almighty.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 53.—And to be true, and speak my soul, when I +survey the occurrences of my life, and call into account +the finger of God, I can perceive nothing but an abyss +and mass of mercies, either in general to mankind, or in +particular to myself. And, whether out of the prejudice +of my affection, or an inverting and partial conceit of +his mercies, I know not,—but those which others term +crosses, afflictions, judgments, misfortunes, to me, who +inquire further into them than their visible effects, they +both appear, and in event have ever proved, the secret +and dissembled favours of his affection. It is a singular +piece of wisdom to apprehend truly, and without passion, +the works of God, and so well to distinguish his justice +from his mercy as not to miscall those noble attributes; +yet it is likewise an honest piece of logick so to dispute +and argue the proceedings of God as to distinguish even +his judgments into mercies. For God is merciful unto +all, because better to the worst than the best deserve; +and to say he punisheth none in this world, though it +be a paradox, is no absurdity. To one that hath committed +murder, if the judge should only ordain a fine, +it were a madness to call this a punishment, and to repine +at the sentence, rather than admire the clemency +of the judge. Thus, our offences being mortal, and +deserving not only death but damnation, if the goodness +of God be content to traverse and pass them over with +a loss, misfortune, or disease; what frenzy were it to +term this a punishment, rather than an extremity of +mercy, and to groan under the rod of his judgments +rather than admire the sceptre of his mercies! Therefore +to adore, honour, and admire him, is a debt of +gratitude due from the obligation of our nature, states, +and conditions: and with these thoughts he that knows +them best will not deny that I adore him. That I +obtain heaven, and the bliss thereof, is accidental, and +not the intended work of my devotion; it being a +felicity I can neither think to deserve nor scarce in +modesty to expect. For these two ends of us all, either +as rewards or punishments, are mercifully ordained and +disproportionably disposed unto our actions; the one +being so far beyond our deserts, the other so infinitely +below our demerits.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 54.—There is no salvation to those that believe +not in Christ; that is, say some, since his nativity, and, +as divinity affirmeth, before also; which makes me +much apprehend the end of those honest worthies and +philosophers which died before his incarnation. It is +hard to place those souls in hell, whose worthy lives do +teach us virtue on earth. Methinks, among those many +subdivisions of hell, there might have been one limbo +left for these. What a strange vision will it be to see +their poetical fictions converted into verities, and their +imagined and fancied furies into real devils! How +strange to them will sound the history of Adam, when +they shall suffer for him they never heard of! When +they who derive their genealogy from the gods, shall +know they are the unhappy issue of sinful man! It is +an insolent part of reason, to controvert the works of +God, or question the justice of his proceedings. Could +humility teach others, as it hath instructed me, to contemplate +the infinite and incomprehensible distance betwixt +the Creator and the creature; or did we seriously +perpend that one simile of St Paul, “shall the vessel say +to the potter, why hast thou made me thus?” it would +prevent these arrogant disputes of reason: nor would +we argue the definitive sentence of God, either to heaven +or hell. Men that live according to the right rule and +law of reason, live but in their own kind, as beasts do +in theirs; who justly obey the prescript of their natures, +and therefore cannot reasonably demand a reward of +their actions, as only obeying the natural dictates of +their reason. It will, therefore, and must, at last +appear, that all salvation is through Christ; which +verity, I fear, these great examples of virtue must confirm, +and make it good how the perfectest actions of +earth have no title or claim unto heaven.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 55.—Nor truly do I think the lives of these, or +of any other, were ever correspondent, or in all points +conformable, unto their doctrines. It is evident that +Aristotle transgressed the rule of his own ethicks;<a name="FNanchor_70" id="FNanchor_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> +the stoicks, that condemn passion, and command a man +to laugh in Phalaris’s<a name="FNanchor_71" id="FNanchor_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> bull, could not endure without a +groan a fit of the stone or colick. The scepticks, that +affirmed they knew nothing,<a name="FNanchor_72" id="FNanchor_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a> even in that opinion confute +themselves, and thought they knew more than all +the world beside. Diogenes I hold to be the most vainglorious +man of his time, and more ambitious in refusing +all honours, than Alexander in rejecting none. Vice +and the devil put a fallacy upon our reasons; and, +provoking us too hastily to run from it, entangle and +profound us deeper in it. The duke of Venice, that +weds himself unto the sea, by a ring of gold,<a name="FNanchor_73" id="FNanchor_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> I will +not accuse of prodigality, because it is a solemnity of +good use and consequence in the state: but the philosopher, +that threw his money into the sea to avoid avarice, +was a notorious prodigal.<a name="FNanchor_74" id="FNanchor_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a> There is no road or ready +way to virtue; it is not an easy point of art to disentangle +ourselves from this riddle or web of sin. To +perfect virtue, as to religion, there is required a <i>panoplia</i>, +or complete armour; that whilst we lie at close ward +against one vice, we lie not open to the veney<a name="FNanchor_75" id="FNanchor_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a> of +another. And indeed wiser discretions, that have the +thread of reason to conduct them, offend without a +pardon; whereas under heads may stumble without +dishonour. There go so many circumstances to piece +up one good action, that it is a lesson to be good, and +we are forced to be virtuous by the book. Again, the +practice of men holds not an equal pace, yea and often +runs counter to their theory; we naturally know what +is good, but naturally pursue what is evil: the rhetorick +wherewith I persuade another cannot persuade myself. +There is a depraved appetite in us, that will with +patience hear the learned instructions of reason, but +yet perform no further than agrees to its own irregular +humour. In brief, we all are monsters; that is, a composition +of man and beast: wherein we must endeavour +to be as the poets fancy that wise man, Chiron; that is, +to have the region of man above that of beast, and sense +to sit but at the feet of reason. Lastly, I do desire with +God that all, but yet affirm with men that few, shall +know salvation,—that the bridge is narrow, the passage +strait unto life: yet those who do confine the church +of God either to particular nations, churches, or +families, have made it far narrower than our Saviour +ever meant it.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 56.—The vulgarity of those judgments that wrap +the church of God in Strabo’s cloak,<a name="FNanchor_76" id="FNanchor_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> and restrain it +unto Europe, seem to me as bad geographers as Alexander, +who thought he had conquered all the world, +when he had not subdued the half of any part thereof. +For we cannot deny the church of God both in Asia +and Africa, if we do not forget the peregrinations of +the apostles, the deaths of the martyrs, the sessions of +many and (even in our reformed judgment) lawful +councils, held in those parts in the minority and +nonage of ours. Nor must a few differences, more remarkable +in the eyes of man than, perhaps, in the +judgment of God, excommunicate from heaven one another; +much less those Christians who are in a manner +all martyrs, maintaining their faith in the noble way +of persecution, and serving God in the fire, whereas +we honour him in the sunshine.</p> + +<p>’Tis true, we all hold there is a number of elect, and +many to be saved; yet, take our opinions together, and +from the confusion thereof, there will be no such thing +as salvation, nor shall any one be saved: for, first, the +church of Rome condemneth us; we likewise them; +the sub-reformists and sectaries sentence the doctrine of +our church as damnable; the atomist, or familist,<a name="FNanchor_77" id="FNanchor_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a> reprobates +all these; and all these, them again. Thus, +whilst the mercies of God do promise us heaven, our +conceits and opinions exclude us from that place. There +must be therefore more than one St Peter; particular +churches and sects usurp the gates of heaven, and turn +the key against each other; and thus we go to heaven +against each other’s wills, conceits, and opinions, and, +with as much uncharity as ignorance, do err, I fear, in +points not only of our own, but one another’s salvation.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 57.—I believe many are saved who to man +seem reprobated, and many are reprobated who in the +opinion and sentence of man stand elected. There will +appear, at the last day, strange and unexpected examples, +both of his justice and his mercy; and, therefore, to +define either is folly in man, and insolency even in the +devils. These acute and subtile spirits, in all their +sagacity, can hardly divine who shall be saved; which +if they could prognostick, their labour were at an end, +nor need they compass the earth, seeking whom they +may devour. Those who, upon a rigid application of +the law, sentence Solomon unto damnation,<a name="FNanchor_78" id="FNanchor_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a> condemn +not only him, but themselves, and the whole world; +for by the letter and written word of God, we are without +exception in the state of death: but there is a prerogative +of God, and an arbitrary pleasure above the +letter of his own law, by which alone we can pretend +unto salvation, and through which Solomon might be as +easily saved as those who condemn him.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 58.—The number of those who pretend unto +salvation, and those infinite swarms who think to pass +through the eye of this needle, have much amazed me. +That name and compellation of “little flock” doth not +comfort, but deject, my devotion; especially when I +reflect upon mine own unworthiness, wherein, according +to my humble apprehensions, I am below them all. +I believe there shall never be an anarchy in heaven; +but, as there are hierarchies amongst the angels, so shall +there be degrees of priority amongst the saints. Yet is +it, I protest, beyond my ambition to aspire unto the +first ranks; my desires only are, and I shall be happy +therein, to be but the last man, and bring up the rear +in heaven.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 59.—Again, I am confident, and fully persuaded, +yet dare not take my oath, of my salvation. I am, as it +were, sure, and do believe without all doubt, that there +is such a city as Constantinople; yet, for me to take +my oath thereon were a kind of perjury, because I hold +no infallible warrant from my own sense to confirm +me in the certainty thereof. And truly, though many +pretend to an absolute certainty of their salvation, yet +when an humble soul shall contemplate our own unworthiness, +she shall meet with many doubts, and suddenly +find how little we stand in need of the precept of +St Paul, “work out your salvation <i>with fear and trembling</i>.” +That which is the cause of my election, I hold to +be the cause of my salvation, which was the mercy and +<i>beneplacit</i> of God, before I was, or the foundation of the +world. “Before Abraham was, I am,” is the saying of +Christ, yet is it true in some sense if I say it of myself; +for I was not only before myself but Adam, that is, in +the idea of God, and the decree of that synod held from +all eternity. And in this sense, I say, the world was +before the creation, and at an end before it had a +beginning. And thus was I dead before I was alive; +though my grave be England, my dying place was +Paradise; and Eve miscarried of me, before she conceived +of Cain.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 60.—Insolent zeals, that do decry good works +and rely only upon faith, take not away merit: for, +depending upon the efficacy of their faith, they enforce +the condition of God, and in a more sophistical way do +seem to challenge heaven. It was decreed by God that +only those that lapped in the water like dogs, should +have the honour to destroy the Midianites; yet could +none of those justly challenge, or imagine he deserved, +that honour thereupon. I do not deny but that true +faith, and such as God requires, is not only a mark or +token, but also a means, of our salvation; but, where +to find this, is as obscure to me as my last end. And +if our Saviour could object, unto his own disciples and +favourites, a faith that, to the quantity of a grain of +mustard seed, is able to remove mountains; surely that +which we boast of is not anything, or, at the most, but +a remove from nothing.</p> + +<p>This is the tenour of my belief; wherein, though +there be many things singular, and to the humour of +my irregular self, yet, if they square not with maturer +judgments, I disclaim them, and do no further favour them +than the learned and best judgments shall authorize them.</p> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h3 class="nobreak"><a name="PART_THE_SECOND" id="PART_THE_SECOND">PART THE SECOND.</a></h3> + +</div> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 1.—Now, for that other virtue of charity, without +which faith is a mere notion and of no existence, I have +ever endeavoured to nourish the merciful disposition +and humane inclination I borrowed from my parents, +and regulate it to the written and prescribed laws of +charity. And, if I hold the true anatomy of myself, I +am delineated and naturally framed to such a piece of +virtue,—for I am of a constitution so general that it +consorts and sympathizeth with all things; I have no +antipathy, or rather idiosyncrasy, in diet, humour, air, +anything. I wonder not at the French for their dishes +of frogs, snails, and toadstools, nor at the Jews for locusts +and grasshoppers; but, being amongst them, make +them my common viands; and I find they agree with +my stomach as well as theirs. I could digest a salad +gathered in a church-yard as well as in a garden. I +cannot start at the presence of a serpent, scorpion, lizard, +or salamander; at the sight of a toad or viper, I find in +me no desire to take up a stone to destroy them. I feel +not in myself those common antipathies that I can discover +in others: those national repugnances do not +touch me, nor do I behold with prejudice the French, +Italian, Spaniard, or Dutch; but, where I find their +actions in balance with my countrymen’s, I honour, love, +and embrace them, in the same degree. I was born in +the eighth climate, but seem to be framed and constellated +unto all. I am no plant that will not prosper out +of a garden. All places, all airs, make unto me one +country; I am in England everywhere, and under any +meridian. I have been shipwrecked, yet am not enemy +with the sea or winds; I can study, play, or sleep, in a +tempest. In brief I am averse from nothing: my conscience +would give me the lie if I should say I absolutely +detest or hate any essence, but the devil; or so +at least abhor anything, but that we might come to +composition. If there be any among those common +objects of hatred I do contemn and laugh at, it is that +great enemy of reason, virtue, and religion, the multitude; +that numerous piece of monstrosity, which, +taken asunder, seem men, and the reasonable creatures +of God, but, confused together, make but one great +beast, and a monstrosity more prodigious than Hydra. +It is no breach of charity to call these fools; it is the +style all holy writers have afforded them, set down by +Solomon in canonical Scripture, and a point of our faith +to believe so. Neither in the name of multitude do I +only include the base and minor sort of people: there +is a rabble even amongst the gentry; a sort of plebeian +heads, whose fancy moves with the same wheel as these; +men in the same level with mechanicks, though their +fortunes do somewhat gild their infirmities, and their +purses compound for their follies. But, as in casting +account three or four men together come short in account +of one man placed by himself below them, so neither +are a troop of these ignorant Doradoes<a name="FNanchor_79" id="FNanchor_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a> of that true +esteem and value as many a forlorn person, whose condition +doth place him below their feet. Let us speak +like politicians; there is a nobility without heraldry, a +natural dignity, whereby one man is ranked with +another, another filed before him, according to the +quality of his desert, and pre-eminence of his good parts. +Though the corruption of these times, and the bias of +present practice, wheel another way, thus it was in the +first and primitive commonwealths, and is yet in the integrity +and cradle of well ordered polities: till corruption +getteth ground;—ruder desires labouring after that +which wiser considerations contemn;—every one having +a liberty to amass and heap up riches, and they a licence +or faculty to do or purchase anything.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 2.—This general and indifferent temper of mine +doth more nearly dispose me to this noble virtue. It is +a happiness to be born and framed unto virtue, and to +grow up from the seeds of nature, rather than the +inoculations and forced grafts of education: yet, if we +are directed only by our particular natures, and regulate +our inclinations by no higher rule than that of our +reasons, we are but moralists; divinity will still call us +heathens. Therefore this great work of charity must +have other motives, ends, and impulsions. I give no +alms to satisfy the hunger of my brother, but to fulfil +and accomplish the will and command of my God; I +draw not my purse for his sake that demands it, but his +that enjoined it; I relieve no man upon the rhetorick +of his miseries, nor to content mine own commiserating +disposition; for this is still but moral charity, and an +act that oweth more to passion than reason. He that +relieves another upon the bare suggestion and bowels of +pity doth not this so much for his sake as for his own; +and so, by relieving them, we relieve ourselves also. +It is as erroneous a conceit to redress other men’s +misfortunes upon the common considerations of merciful +natures, that it may be one day our own case; for this +is a sinister and politick kind of charity, whereby we +seem to bespeak the pities of men in the like occasions. +And truly I have observed that those professed eleemosynaries, +though in a crowd or multitude, do yet direct +and place their petitions on a few and selected persons; +there is surely a physiognomy, which those experienced +and master mendicants observe, whereby they instantly +discover a merciful aspect, and will single out a face, +wherein they spy the signature and marks of mercy. +For there are mystically in our faces certain characters +which carry in them the motto of our souls, wherein he +that can read A, B, C, may read our natures. I hold, +moreover, that there is a phytognomy, or physiognomy, +not only of men, but of plants and vegetables; and is +every one of them some outward figures which hang as +signs or bushes of their inward forms. The finger of +God hath left an inscription upon all his works, not +graphical, or composed of letters, but of their several +forms, constitutions, parts, and operations, which, aptly +joined together, do make one word that doth express +their natures. By these letters God calls the stars by +their names; and by this alphabet Adam assigned to +every creature a name peculiar to its nature. Now, +there are, besides these characters in our faces, certain +mystical figures in our hands, which I dare not call +mere dashes, strokes <i>à la volee</i> or at random, because +delineated by a pencil that never works in vain; and +hereof I take more particular notice, because I carry +that in mine own hand which I could never read of nor +discover in another. Aristotle, I confess, in his acute +and singular book of physiognomy, hath made no +mention of chiromancy:<a name="FNanchor_80" id="FNanchor_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a> yet I believe the Egyptians, +who were nearer addicted to those abstruse and mystical +sciences, had a knowledge therein: to which those +vagabond and counterfeit Egyptians did after<a name="FNanchor_81" id="FNanchor_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a> pretend, +and perhaps retained a few corrupted principles, which +sometimes might verify their prognosticks.</p> + +<p>It is the common wonder of all men, how, among so +many millions of faces, there should be none alike: +now, contrary, I wonder as much how there should be +any. He that shall consider how many thousand +several words have been carelessly and without study +composed out of twenty-four letters; withal, how many +hundred lines there are to be drawn in the fabrick of +one man; shall easily find that this variety is necessary: +and it will be very hard that they shall so concur as to +make one portrait like another. Let a painter carelessly +limn out a million of faces, and you shall find them all +different; yes, let him have his copy before him, yet, +after all his art, there will remain a sensible distinction: +for the pattern or example of everything is the perfectest +in that kind, whereof we still come short, though we +transcend or go beyond it; because herein it is wide, +and agrees not in all points unto its copy. Nor doth +the similitude of creatures disparage the variety of +nature, nor any way confound the works of God. For +even in things alike there is diversity; and those that +do seem to accord do manifestly disagree. And thus is +man like God; for, in the same things that we resemble +him we are utterly different from him. There was +never anything so like another as in all points to +concur; there will ever some reserved difference slip +in, to prevent the identity; without which two several +things would not be alike, but the same, which is +impossible.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 3.—But, to return from philosophy to charity, I +hold not so narrow a conceit of this virtue as to conceive +that to give alms is only to be charitable, or think +a piece of liberality can comprehend the total of charity. +Divinity hath wisely divided the act thereof into many +branches, and hath taught us, in this narrow way, many +paths unto goodness; as many ways as we may do good, +so many ways we may be charitable. There are infirmities +not only of body, but of soul and fortunes, +which do require the merciful hand of our abilities. I +cannot contemn a man for ignorance, but behold him +with as much pity as I do Lazarus. It is no greater +charity to clothe his body than apparel the nakedness +of his soul. It is an honourable object to see the +reasons of other men wear our liveries, and their +borrowed understandings do homage to the bounty of +ours. It is the cheapest way of beneficence, and, like +the natural charity of the sun, illuminates another +without obscuring itself. To be reserved and caitiff<a name="FNanchor_82" id="FNanchor_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a> +in this part of goodness is the sordidest piece of covetousness, +and more contemptible than the pecuniary avarice. +To this (as calling myself a scholar) I am obliged by +the duty of my condition. I make not therefore my +head a grave, but a treasure of knowledge. I intend no +monopoly, but a community in learning. I study not +for my own sake only, but for theirs that study not for +themselves. I envy no man that knows more than +myself, but pity them that know less. I instruct no +man as an exercise of my knowledge, or with an intent +rather to nourish and keep it alive in mine own head +than beget and propagate it in his. And, in the midst +of all my endeavours, there is but one thought that +dejects me, that my acquired parts must perish with +myself, nor can be legacied among my honoured friends. +I cannot fall out or contemn a man for an error, or +conceive why a difference in opinion should divide an +affection; for controversies, disputes, and argumentations, +both in philosophy and in divinity, if they meet +with discreet and peaceable natures, do not infringe the +laws of charity. In all disputes, so much as there is of +passion, so much there is of nothing to the purpose; for +then reason, like a bad hound, spends upon a false scent, +and forsakes the question first started. And this is one +reason why controversies are never determined; for, +though they be amply proposed, they are scarce at all +handled; they do so swell with unnecessary digressions; +and the parenthesis on the party is often as large as the +main discourse upon the subject. The foundations of +religion are already established, and the principles of +salvation subscribed unto by all. There remain not +many controversies worthy a passion, and yet never any +dispute without, not only in divinity but inferior arts. +What a βατραχομυομαχία and hot skirmish is betwixt S. +and T. in Lucian!<a name="FNanchor_83" id="FNanchor_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> How do grammarians hack and +slash for the genitive case in Jupiter!<a name="FNanchor_84" id="FNanchor_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a> How do they +break their own pates, to salve that of Priscian!<a name="FNanchor_85" id="FNanchor_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a> “<i>Si +foret in terris, rideret Democritus.</i>” Yes, even amongst +wiser militants, how many wounds have been given and +credits slain, for the poor victory of an opinion, or +beggarly conquest of a distinction! Scholars are men +of peace, they bear no arms, but their tongues are +sharper than Actius’s razor;<a name="FNanchor_86" id="FNanchor_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a> their pens carry farther, +and give a louder report than thunder. I had rather +stand the shock of a basilisko<a name="FNanchor_87" id="FNanchor_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> than in the fury of +a merciless pen. It is not mere zeal to learning, or +devotion to the muses, that wiser princes patron the +arts, and carry an indulgent aspect unto scholars; but +a desire to have their names eternized by the memory +of their writings, and a fear of the revengeful pen of +succeeding ages: for these are the men that, when they +have played their parts, and had their <i>exits</i>, must step +out and give the moral of their scenes, and deliver unto +posterity an inventory of their virtues and vices. And +surely there goes a great deal of conscience to the +compiling of an history: there is no reproach to the +scandal of a story; it is such an authentick kind of +falsehood, that with authority belies our good names to +all nations and posterity.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 4.—There is another offence unto charity, which +no author hath ever written of, and few take notice of, +and that’s the reproach, not of whole professions, mysteries, +and conditions, but of whole nations, wherein by +opprobrious epithets we miscall each other, and, by an +uncharitable logick, from a disposition in a few, conclude +a habit in all.</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">Le mutin Anglois, et le bravache Escossois</div> + <div class="verse">Le bougre Italien, et le fol Francois;</div> + <div class="verse">Le poltron Romain, le larron de Gascogne,</div> + <div class="verse">L’Espagnol superbe, et l’Alleman yvrogne.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>St Paul, that calls the Cretians liars, doth it but indirectly, +and upon quotation of their own poet.<a name="FNanchor_88" id="FNanchor_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a> It is +as bloody a thought in one way as Nero’s was in +another.<a name="FNanchor_89" id="FNanchor_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a> For by a word we wound a thousand, and +at one blow assassin the honour of a nation. It is as +complete a piece of madness to miscall and rave against +the times; or think to recall men to reason by a fit of +passion. Democritus, that thought to laugh the times +into goodness, seems to me as deeply hypochondriack +as Heraclitus, that bewailed them. It moves not my +spleen to behold the multitude in their proper humours; +that is, in their fits of folly and madness, as well understanding +that wisdom is not profaned unto the world; +and it is the privilege of a few to be virtuous. They +that endeavour to abolish vice destroy also virtue; for +contraries, though they destroy one another, are yet +the life of one another. Thus virtue (abolish vice) is +an idea. Again, the community of sin doth not disparage +goodness; for, when vice gains upon the major +part, virtue, in whom it remains, becomes more excellent, +and, being lost in some, multiplies its goodness in +others, which remain untouched, and persist entire in +the general inundation. I can therefore behold vice +without a satire, content only with an admonition, or +instructive reprehension; for noble natures, and such +as are capable of goodness, are railed into vice, that +might as easily be admonished into virtue; and we +should be all so far the orators of goodness as to protect +her from the power of vice, and maintain the cause of +injured truth. No man can justly censure or condemn +another; because, indeed, no man truly knows another. +This I perceive in myself; for I am in the dark to all +the world, and my nearest friends behold me but in a +cloud. Those that know me but superficially think +less of me than I do of myself; those of my near acquaintance +think more; God who truly knows me, +knows that I am nothing: for he only beholds me, and +all the world, who looks not on us through a derived +ray, or a trajection of a sensible species, but beholds the +substance without the help of accidents, and the forms +of things, as we their operations. Further, no man can +judge another, because no man knows himself; for we +censure others but as they disagree from that humour +which we fancy laudable in ourselves, and commend +others but for that wherein they seem to quadrate and +consent with us. So that in conclusion, all is but that +we all condemn, self-love. ’Tis the general complaint +of these times, and perhaps of those past, that charity +grows cold; which I perceive most verified in those +which do most manifest the fires and flames of zeal; +for it is a virtue that best agrees with coldest natures, +and such as are complexioned for humility. But how +shall we expect charity towards others, when we are +uncharitable to ourselves? “Charity begins at home,” +is the voice of the world; yet is every man his greatest +enemy, and as it were his own executioner. “<i>Non occides</i>,” +is the commandment of God, yet scarce observed by any +man; for I perceive every man is his own Atropos, and +lends a hand to cut the thread of his own days. Cain +was not therefore the first murderer, but Adam, who +brought in death; whereof he beheld the practice and +example in his own son Abel; and saw that verified in +the experience of another which faith could not persuade +him in the theory of himself.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 5.—There is, I think, no man that apprehends +his own miseries less than myself; and no man that so +nearly apprehends another’s. I could lose an arm +without a tear, and with few groans, methinks, be +quartered into pieces; yet can I weep most seriously +at a play, and receive with a true passion the counterfeit +griefs of those known and professed impostures. It +is a barbarous part of inhumanity to add unto any +afflicted parties misery, or endeavour to multiply in +any man a passion whose single nature is already above +his patience. This was the greatest affliction of Job, +and those oblique expostulations of his friends a deeper +injury than the down-right blows of the devil. It is +not the tears of our own eyes only, but of our friends +also, that do exhaust the current of our sorrows; which, +falling into many streams, runs more peaceably, and is +contented with a narrower channel. It is an act within +the power of charity, to translate a passion out of one +breast into another, and to divide a sorrow almost out +of itself; for an affliction, like a dimension, may be so +divided as, if not indivisible, at least to become insensible. +Now with my friend I desire not to share or +participate, but to engross, his sorrows; that, by making +them mine own, I may more easily discuss them: +for in mine own reason, and within myself, I can command +that which I cannot entreat without myself, and +within the circle of another. I have often thought +those noble pairs and examples of friendship, not so +truly histories of what had been, as fictions of what +should be; but I now perceive nothing in them but +possibilities, nor anything in the heroick examples of +Damon and Pythias, Achilles and Patroclus, which, +methinks, upon some grounds, I could not perform +within the narrow compass of myself. That a man +should lay down his life for his friend seems strange to +vulgar affections and such as confine themselves within +that worldly principle, “Charity begins at home.” For +mine own part, I could never remember the relations +that I held unto myself, nor the respect that I owe unto +my own nature, in the cause of God, my country, and +my friends. Next to these three, I do embrace myself. +I confess I do not observe that order that the schools +ordain our affections,—to love our parents, wives, children, +and then our friends; for, excepting the injunctions +of religion, I do not find in myself such a necessary +and indissoluble sympathy to all those of my blood. +I hope I do not break the fifth commandment, if I +conceive I may love my friend before the nearest of my +blood, even those to whom I owe the principles of life. +I never yet cast a true affection on a woman; but I +have loved my friend, as I do virtue, my soul, my God. +From hence, methinks, I do conceive how God loves +man; what happiness there is in the love of God. +Omitting all other, there are three most mystical +unions; two natures in one person; three persons in +one nature; one soul in two bodies. For though, indeed, +they be really divided, yet are they so united, as +they seem but one, and make rather a duality than two +distinct souls.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 6.—There are wonders in true affection. It is a +body of enigmas, mysteries, and riddles; wherein two +so become one as they both become two: I love my +friend before myself, and yet, methinks, I do not love +him enough. Some few months hence, my multiplied +affection will make me believe I have not loved him at +all. When I am from him, I am dead till I be with +him. United souls are not satisfied with embraces, but +desire to be truly each other; which being impossible, +these desires are infinite, and must proceed without a +possibility of satisfaction. Another misery there is in +affection; that whom we truly love like our own selves, +we forget their looks, nor can our memory retain the +idea of their faces: and it is no wonder, for they are +ourselves, and our affection makes their looks our own. +This noble affection falls not on vulgar and common +constitutions; but on such as are marked for virtue. +He that can love his friend with this noble ardour will +in a competent degree effect all. Now, if we can bring +our affections to look beyond the body, and cast an eye +upon the soul, we have found out the true object, not +only of friendship, but charity: and the greatest happiness +that we can bequeath the soul is that wherein we +all do place our last felicity, salvation; which, though +it be not in our power to bestow, it is in our charity and +pious invocations to desire, if not procure and further. +I cannot contentedly frame a prayer for myself in particular, +without a catalogue for my friends; nor request +a happiness wherein my sociable disposition doth not +desire the fellowship of my neighbour. I never hear +the toll of a passing bell, though in my mirth, without +my prayers and best wishes for the departing spirit. +I cannot go to cure the body of my patient, but I forget +my profession, and call unto God for his soul. I cannot +see one say his prayers, but, instead of imitating +him, I fall into supplication for him, who perhaps is no +more to me than a common nature: and if God hath +vouchsafed an ear to my supplications, there are surely +many happy that never saw me, and enjoy the blessing +of mine unknown devotions. To pray for enemies, that +is, for their salvation, is no harsh precept, but the practice +of our daily and ordinary devotions. I cannot believe +the story of the Italian;<a name="FNanchor_90" id="FNanchor_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a> our bad wishes and uncharitable +desires proceed no further than this life; it is the +devil, and the uncharitable votes of hell, that desire our +misery in the world to come.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 7.—“To do no injury nor take none” was a principle +which, to my former years and impatient affections, +seemed to contain enough of morality, but my more +settled years, and Christian constitution, have fallen +upon severer resolutions. I can hold there is no such +things as injury; that if there be, there is no such injury +as revenge, and no such revenge as the contempt of an +injury: that to hate another is to malign himself; that +the truest way to love another is to despise ourselves. +I were unjust unto mine own conscience if I should say +I am at variance with anything like myself. I find +there are many pieces in this one fabrick of man; this +frame is raised upon a mass of antipathies: I am one +methinks but as the world, wherein notwithstanding +there are a swarm of distinct essences, and in them +another world of contrarieties; we carry private and +domestick enemies within, public and more hostile adversaries +without. The devil, that did but buffet St +Paul, plays methinks at sharp<a name="FNanchor_91" id="FNanchor_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> with me. Let me be +nothing, if within the compass of myself, I do not find +the battle of Lepanto,<a name="FNanchor_92" id="FNanchor_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a> passion against reason, reason +against faith, faith against the devil, and my conscience +against all. There is another man within me that’s +angry with me, rebukes, commands, and dastards me. +I have no conscience of marble, to resist the hammer of +more heavy offences: nor yet so soft and waxen, as to +take the impression of each single peccadillo or scape of +infirmity. I am of a strange belief, that it is as easy to +be forgiven some sins as to commit some others. For +my original sin, I hold it to be washed away in my +baptism; for my actual transgressions, I compute and +reckon with God but from my last repentance, sacrament, +or general absolution; and therefore am not +terrified with the sins or madness of my youth. I thank +the goodness of God, I have no sins that want a name. +I am not singular in offences; my transgressions are +epidemical, and from the common breath of our corruption. +For there are certain tempers of body which, +matched with a humorous depravity of mind, do hatch +and produce vitiosities, whose newness and monstrosity +of nature admits no name; this was the temper of that +lecher that carnaled with a statua, and the constitution +of Nero in his spintrian recreations. For the heavens +are not only fruitful in new and unheard-of stars, the +earth in plants and animals, but men’s minds also in +villany and vices. Now the dulness of my reason, and +the vulgarity of my disposition, never prompted my invention +nor solicited my affection unto any of these;—yet +even those common and quotidian infirmities that +so necessarily attend me, and do seem to be my very +nature, have so dejected me, so broken the estimation +that I should have otherwise of myself, that I repute +myself the most abject piece of mortality. Divines prescribe +a fit of sorrow to repentance: there goes indignation, +anger, sorrow, hatred, into mine, passions of a contrary +nature, which neither seem to suit with this action, +nor my proper constitution. It is no breach of charity +to ourselves to be at variance with our vices, nor to +abhor that part of us, which is an enemy to the ground +of charity, our God; wherein we do but imitate our +great selves, the world, whose divided antipathies and +contrary faces do yet carry a charitable regard unto the +whole, by their particular discords preserving the common +harmony, and keeping in fetters those powers, +whose rebellions, once masters, might be the ruin of all.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 8.—I thank God, amongst those millions of vices +I do inherit and hold from Adam, I have escaped one, +and that a mortal enemy to charity,—the first and +father sin, not only of man, but of the devil,—pride; a +vice whose name is comprehended in a monosyllable, +but in its nature not circumscribed with a world, I have +escaped it in a condition that can hardly avoid it. Those +petty acquisitions and reputed perfections, that advance +and elevate the conceits of other men, add no feathers +unto mine. I have seen a grammarian tower and plume +himself over a single line in Horace, and show more +pride, in the construction of one ode, than the author +in the composure of the whole book. For my own part, +besides the jargon and <i>patois</i> of several provinces, I +understand no less than six languages; yet I protest I +have no higher conceit of myself than had our fathers +before the confusion of Babel, when there was but one +language in the world, and none to boast himself either +linguist or critick. I have not only seen several countries, +beheld the nature of their climes, the chorography +of their provinces, topography of their cities, but understood +their several laws, customs, and policies; yet +cannot all this persuade the dulness of my spirit unto +such an opinion of myself as I behold in nimbler and +conceited heads, that never looked a degree beyond +their nests. I know the names and somewhat more of +all the constellations in my horizon; yet I have seen +a prating mariner, that could only name the pointers +and the north-star, out-talk me, and conceit himself a +whole sphere above me. I know most of the plants of +my country, and of those about me, yet methinks I do +not know so many as when I did but know a hundred, +and had scarcely ever simpled further than Cheapside. +For, indeed, heads of capacity, and such as are not full +with a handful or easy measure of knowledge, think +they know nothing till they know all; which being +impossible, they fall upon the opinion of Socrates, and +only know they know not anything. I cannot think +that Homer pined away upon the riddle of the fishermen, +or that Aristotle, who understood the uncertainty +of knowledge, and confessed so often the reason of man +too weak for the works of nature, did ever drown himself +upon the flux and reflux of Euripus.<a name="FNanchor_93" id="FNanchor_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a> We do but +learn, to-day, what our better advanced judgments will +unteach to-morrow; and Aristotle doth but instruct us, +as Plato did him, that is, to confute himself. I have +run through all sorts, yet find no rest in any: though +our first studies and junior endeavours may style us +Peripateticks, Stoicks, or Academicks, yet I perceive +the wisest heads prove, at last, almost all Scepticks,<a name="FNanchor_94" id="FNanchor_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> +and stand like Janus in the field of knowledge. I have +therefore one common and authentick philosophy I +learned in the schools, whereby I discourse and satisfy +the reason of other men; another more reserved, and +drawn from experience, whereby I content mine own. +Solomon, that complained of ignorance in the height of +knowledge, hath not only humbled my conceits, but +discouraged my endeavours. There is yet another conceit +that hath sometimes made me shut my books, which +tells me it is a vanity to waste our days in the blind +pursuit of knowledge: it is but attending a little longer, +and we shall enjoy that, by instinct and infusion, which +we endeavour at here by labour and inquisition. It is +better to sit down in a modest ignorance, and rest contented +with the natural blessing of our own reasons, +than by the uncertain knowledge of this life with sweat +and vexation, which death gives every fool gratis, and is +an accessary of our glorification.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 9.—I was never yet once, and commend their +resolutions who never marry twice. Not that I disallow +of second marriage; as neither in all cases of polygamy, +which considering some times, and the unequal +number of both sexes, may be also necessary. The +whole world was made for man, but the twelfth part of +man for woman. Man is the whole world, and the +breath of God; woman the rib and crooked piece of +man. I could be content that we might procreate like +trees, without conjunction, or that there were any way +to perpetuate the world without this trivial and vulgar +way of coition: it is the foolishest act a wise man commits +in all his life, nor is there anything that will more +deject his cooled imagination, when he shall consider +what an odd and unworthy piece of folly he hath committed. +I speak not in prejudice, nor am averse from +that sweet sex, but naturally amorous of all that is +beautiful. I can look a whole day with delight upon a +handsome picture, though it be but of an horse. It is +my temper, and I like it the better, to affect all harmony; +and sure there is musick, even in the beauty and the +silent note which Cupid strikes, far sweeter than the +sound of an instrument. For there is a musick wherever +there is a harmony, order, or proportion; and thus +far we may maintain “the musick of the spheres:” for +those well-ordered motions, and regular paces, though +they give no sound unto the ear, yet to the understanding +they strike a note most full of harmony. Whatsoever +is harmonically composed delights in harmony, +which makes me much distrust the symmetry of those +heads which declaim against all church-musick. For +myself, not only from my obedience but my particular +genius I do embrace it: for even that vulgar and tavern-musick +which makes one man merry, another mad, +strikes in me a deep fit of devotion, and a profound +contemplation of the first composer. There is something +in it of divinity more than the ear discovers: it is +an hieroglyphical and shadowed lesson of the whole +world, and creatures of God,—such a melody to the ear, +as the whole world, well understood, would afford the +understanding. In brief, it is a sensible fit of that +harmony which intellectually sounds in the ears of God. +I will not say, with Plato, the soul is an harmony, but +harmonical, and hath its nearest sympathy unto musick: +thus some, whose temper of body agrees, and humours +the constitution of their souls, are born poets, though +indeed all are naturally inclined unto rhythm. This +made Tacitus, in the very first line of his story, fall upon +a verse;<a name="FNanchor_XVI._16" id="FNanchor_XVI._16"></a><a href="#Footnote_XVI._16" class="fnanchor">[XVI.]</a> and Cicero, the worst of poets, but declaiming +for a poet, falls in the very first sentence upon a +perfect hexameter.<a name="FNanchor_XVII._17" id="FNanchor_XVII._17"></a><a href="#Footnote_XVII._17" class="fnanchor">[XVII.]</a> I feel not in me those sordid and +unchristian desires of my profession; I do not secretly +implore and wish for plagues, rejoice at famines, revolve +ephemerides and almanacks in expectation of malignant +aspects, fatal conjunctions, and eclipses. I rejoice not +at unwholesome springs nor unseasonable winters: my +prayer goes with the husbandman’s; I desire everything +in its proper season, that neither men nor the times be +out of temper. Let me be sick myself, if sometimes the +malady of my patient be not a disease unto me. I +desire rather to cure his infirmities than my own necessities. +Where I do him no good, methinks it is scarce +honest gain, though I confess ’tis but the worthy salary +of our well intended endeavours. I am not only +ashamed but heartily sorry, that, besides death, there +are diseases incurable; yet not for my own sake or that +they be beyond my art, but for the general cause and +sake of humanity, whose common cause I apprehend as +mine own. And, to speak more generally, those three +noble professions which all civil commonwealths do +honour, are raised upon the fall of Adam, and are not +any way exempt from their infirmities. There are not +only diseases incurable in physick, but cases indissolvable +in law, vices incorrigible in divinity. If general +councils may err, I do not see why particular courts +should be infallible: their perfectest rules are raised +upon the erroneous reasons of man, and the laws of one +do but condemn the rules of another; as Aristotle ofttimes +the opinions of his predecessors, because, though +agreeable to reason, yet were not consonant to his own +rules and the logick of his proper principles. Again,—to +speak nothing of the sin against the Holy Ghost, +whose cure not only, but whose nature is unknown,—I +can cure the gout or stone in some, sooner than divinity, +pride, or avarice in others. I can cure vices by physick +when they remain incurable by divinity, and they shall +obey my pills when they contemn their precepts. I +boast nothing, but plainly say, we all labour against our +own cure; for death is the cure of all diseases. There +is no <i>catholicon</i> or universal remedy I know, but this, +which though nauseous to queasy stomachs, yet to prepared +appetites is nectar, and a pleasant potion of immortality.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 10.—For my conversation, it is, like the sun’s, +with all men, and with a friendly aspect to good and +bad. Methinks there is no man bad; and the worst +best, that is, while they are kept within the circle of +those qualities wherein they are good. There is no +man’s mind of so discordant and jarring a temper, to +which a tuneable disposition may not strike a harmony. +<i>Magnæ virtutes, nec minora vitia;</i> it is the posy<a name="FNanchor_95" id="FNanchor_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a> of +the best natures, and may be inverted on the worst. +There are, in the most depraved and venomous dispositions, +certain pieces that remain untouched, which by +an <i>antiperistasis</i><a name="FNanchor_96" id="FNanchor_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a> become more excellent, or by the +excellency of their antipathies are able to preserve themselves +from the contagion of their enemy vices, and +persist entire beyond the general corruption. For it is +also thus in nature: the greatest balsams do lie enveloped +in the bodies of the most powerful corrosives. +I say moreover, and I ground upon experience, that +poisons contain within themselves their own antidote, +and that which preserves them from the venom of themselves; +without which they were not deleterious to +others only, but to themselves also. But it is the corruption +that I fear within me; not the contagion of +commerce without me. ’Tis that unruly regiment +within me, that will destroy me; ’tis that I do infect +myself; the man without a navel<a name="FNanchor_97" id="FNanchor_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a> yet lives in me. +I feel that original canker corrode and devour me: and +therefore, “<i>Defenda me, Dios, de me!</i>” “Lord, deliver me +from myself!” is a part of my litany, and the first voice +of my retired imaginations. There is no man alone, +because every man is a microcosm, and carries the whole +world about him. “<i>Nunquam minus solus quam cum +solus,</i>”<a name="FNanchor_XVIII._18" id="FNanchor_XVIII._18"></a><a href="#Footnote_XVIII._18" class="fnanchor">[XVIII.]</a> though it be the apothegm of a wise man is yet +true in the mouth of a fool: for indeed, though in a +wilderness, a man is never alone; not only because he +is with himself, and his own thoughts, but because he +is with the devil, who ever consorts with our solitude, +and is that unruly rebel that musters up those disordered +motions which accompany our sequestered imaginations. +And to speak more narrowly, there is no such thing as +solitude, nor anything that can be said to be alone, and +by itself, but God;—who is his own circle, and can subsist +by himself; all others, besides their dissimilary and +heterogeneous parts, which in a manner multiply their +natures, cannot subsist without the concourse of God, +and the society of that hand which doth uphold their +natures. In brief, there can be nothing truly alone, +and by its self, which is not truly one, and such is only +God: all others do transcend an unity, and so by consequence +are many.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 11.—Now for my life, it is a miracle of thirty +years, which to relate, were not a history, but a piece of +poetry, and would sound to common ears like a fable. +For the world, I count it not an inn, but an hospital; +and a place not to live, but to die in. The world that I +regard is myself; it is the microcosm of my own frame +that I cast mine eye on: for the other, I use it but like +my globe, and turn it round sometimes for my recreation. +Men that look upon my outside, perusing only +my condition and fortunes, do err in my altitude; for I +am above Atlas’s shoulders.<a name="FNanchor_98" id="FNanchor_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a> The earth is a point not +only in respect of the heavens above us, but of the +heavenly and celestial part within us. That mass of +flesh that circumscribes me limits not my mind. That +surface that tells the heavens it hath an end cannot +persuade me I have any. I take my circle to be above +three hundred and sixty. Though the number of the +ark do measure my body, it comprehendeth not my +mind. Whilst I study to find how I am a microcosm, +or little world, I find myself something more than the +great. There is surely a piece of divinity in us; something +that was before the elements, and owes no homage +unto the sun. Nature tells me, I am the image of God, +as well as Scripture. He that understands not thus +much hath not his introduction or first lesson, and is +yet to begin the alphabet of man. Let me not injure the +felicity of others, if I say I am as happy as any. “<i>Ruat +cœlum, fiat voluntas tua,</i>” salveth all; so that, whatsoever +happens, it is but what our daily prayers desire. +In brief, I am content; and what should providence +add more? Surely this is it we call happiness, and this +do I enjoy; with this I am happy in a dream, and as +content to enjoy a happiness in a fancy, as others in a +more apparent truth and reality. There is surely a +nearer apprehension of anything that delights us, in our +dreams, than in our waked senses. Without this I were +unhappy; for my awaked judgment discontents me, +ever whispering unto me that I am from my friend, but +my friendly dreams in the night requite me, and make +me think I am within his arms. I thank God for my +happy dreams, as I do for my good rest; for there is a +satisfaction in them unto reasonable desires, and such +as can be content with a fit of happiness. And surely +it is not a melancholy conceit to think we are all asleep +in this world, and that the conceits of this life are as +mere dreams, to those of the next, as the phantasms of +the night, to the conceits of the day. There is an equal +delusion in both; and the one doth but seem to be the +emblem or picture of the other. We are somewhat +more than ourselves in our sleeps; and the slumber of +the body seems to be but the waking of the soul. It is +the ligation of sense, but the liberty of reason; and our +waking conceptions do not match the fancies of our +sleeps. At my nativity, my ascendant was the watery +sign of <i>Scorpio</i>. I was born in the planetary hour of +<i>Saturn</i>, and I think I have a piece of that leaden planet +in me. I am no way facetious, nor disposed for the +mirth and galliardise<a name="FNanchor_99" id="FNanchor_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> of company; yet in one dream +I can compose a whole comedy, behold the action, apprehend +the jests, and laugh myself awake at the conceits +thereof. Were my memory as faithful as my +reason is then fruitful, I would never study but in my +dreams, and this time also would I choose for my devotions: +but our grosser memories have then so little hold +of our abstracted understandings, that they forget the +story, and can only relate to our awaked souls a confused +and broken tale of that which hath passed. Aristotle, +who hath written a singular tract of sleep, hath +not, methinks, thoroughly defined it; nor yet Galen, +though he seem to have corrected it; for those <i>noctambulos</i> +and night-walkers, though in their sleep, do yet +enjoy the action of their senses. We must therefore say +that there is something in us that is not in the jurisdiction +of Morpheus; and that those abstracted and +ecstatick souls do walk about in their own corpses, as +spirits with the bodies they assume, wherein they seem +to hear, see, and feel, though indeed the organs are +destitute of sense, and their natures of those faculties +that should inform them. Thus it is observed, that men +sometimes, upon the hour of their departure, do speak +and reason above themselves. For then the soul beginning +to be freed from the ligaments of the body, begins +to reason like herself, and to discourse in a strain above +mortality.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 12.—We term sleep a death; and yet it is waking +that kills us, and destroys those spirits that are the +house of life. ’Tis indeed a part of life that best expresseth +death; for every man truly lives, so long as he +acts his nature, or some way makes good the faculties +of himself. Themistocles therefore, that slew his soldier +in his sleep, was a merciful executioner: ’tis a kind of +punishment the mildness of no laws hath invented; I +wonder the fancy of Lucan and Seneca did not discover +it. It is that death by which we may be literally said +to die daily; a death which Adam died before his mortality; +a death whereby we live a middle and moderating +point between life and death. In fine, so like death, +I dare not trust it without my prayers, and an half +adieu unto the world, and take my farewell in a colloquy +with God:—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">The night is come, like to the day;</div> + <div class="verse">Depart not thou, great God, away.</div> + <div class="verse">Let not my sins, black as the night,</div> + <div class="verse">Eclipse the lustre of thy light.</div> + <div class="verse">Keep still in my horizon; for to me</div> + <div class="verse">The sun makes not the day, but thee.</div> + <div class="verse">Thou whose nature cannot sleep,</div> + <div class="verse">On my temples sentry keep;</div> + <div class="verse">Guard me ’gainst those watchful foes,</div> + <div class="verse">Whose eyes are open while mine close.</div> + <div class="verse">Let no dreams my head infest,</div> + <div class="verse">But such as Jacob’s temples blest.</div> + <div class="verse">While I do rest, my soul advance:</div> + <div class="verse">Make my sleep a holy trance:</div> + <div class="verse">That I may, my rest being wrought,</div> + <div class="verse">Awake into some holy thought,</div> + <div class="verse">And with as active vigour run</div> + <div class="verse">My course as doth the nimble sun.</div> + <div class="verse">Sleep is a death;—Oh make me try,</div> + <div class="verse">By sleeping, what it is to die!</div> + <div class="verse">And as gently lay my head</div> + <div class="verse">On my grave, as now my bed.</div> + <div class="verse">Howe’er I rest, great God, let me</div> + <div class="verse">Awake again at last with thee.</div> + <div class="verse">And thus assured, behold I lie</div> + <div class="verse">Securely, or to wake or die.</div> + <div class="verse">These are my drowsy days; in vain</div> + <div class="verse">I do now wake to sleep again:</div> + <div class="verse">Oh come that hour, when I shall never</div> + <div class="verse">Sleep again, but wake for ever!</div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>This is the dormitive I take to bedward; I need no other +<i>laudanum</i> than this to make me sleep; after which I +close mine eyes in security, content to take my leave of +the sun, and sleep unto the resurrection.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 13.—The method I should use in distributive +justice, I often observe in commutative; and keep a +geometrical proportion in both, whereby becoming +equable to others, I become unjust to myself, and +supererogate in that common principle, “Do unto +others as thou wouldst be done unto thyself.” I was +not born unto riches, neither is it, I think, my star to +be wealthy; or if it were, the freedom of my mind, and +frankness of my disposition, were able to contradict and +cross my fates: for to me avarice seems not so much a +vice, as a deplorable piece of madness; to conceive ourselves +urinals, or be persuaded that we are dead, is not +so ridiculous, nor so many degrees beyond the power of +hellebore,<a name="FNanchor_100" id="FNanchor_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a> as this. The opinions of theory, and positions +of men, are not so void of reason, as their practised +conclusions. Some have held that snow is black, that +the earth moves, that the soul is air, fire, water; but +all this is philosophy: and there is no delirium, if we +do but speculate the folly and indisputable dotage of +avarice. To that subterraneous idol, and god of the +earth, I do confess I am an atheist. I cannot persuade +myself to honour that the world adores; whatsoever +virtue its prepared substance may have within my +body, it hath no influence nor operation without. I +would not entertain a base design, or an action that +should call me villain, for the Indies; and for this only +do I love and honour my own soul, and have methinks +two arms too few to embrace myself. Aristotle is too +severe, that will not allow us to be truly liberal without +wealth, and the bountiful hand of fortune; if this +be true, I must confess I am charitable only in my +liberal intentions, and bountiful well wishes. But if +the example of the mite be not only an act of wonder, +but an example of the noblest charity, surely poor men +may also build hospitals, and the rich alone have not +erected cathedrals. I have a private method which +others observe not; I take the opportunity of myself +to do good; I borrow occasion of charity from my own +necessities, and supply the wants of others, when I am +in most need myself: for it is an honest stratagem to +take advantage of ourselves, and so to husband the acts +of virtue, that, where they are defective in one circumstance, +they may repay their want, and multiply their +goodness in another. I have not Peru in my desires, +but a competence and ability to perform those good +works to which he hath inclined my nature. He is +rich who hath enough to be charitable; and it is hard +to be so poor that a noble mind may not find a way to +this piece of goodness. “He that giveth to the poor +lendeth to the Lord:” there is more rhetorick in that +one sentence than in a library of sermons. And indeed, +if those sentences were understood by the reader with +the same emphasis as they are delivered by the author, +we needed not those volumes of instructions, but might +be honest by an epitome. Upon this motive only I +cannot behold a beggar without relieving his necessities +with my purse, or his soul with my prayers. These +scenical and accidental differences between us cannot +make me forget that common and untoucht part of us +both: there is under these centoes<a name="FNanchor_101" id="FNanchor_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a> and miserable +outsides, those mutilate and semi bodies, a soul of the +same alloy with our own, whose genealogy is God’s as +well as ours, and in as fair a way to salvation as ourselves. +Statists that labour to contrive a commonwealth +without our poverty take away the object of charity; +not understanding only the commonwealth of a Christian, +but forgetting the prophecy of Christ.<a name="FNanchor_XIX._19" id="FNanchor_XIX._19"></a><a href="#Footnote_XIX._19" class="fnanchor">[XIX.]</a></p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 14.—Now, there is another part of charity, which +is the basis and pillar of this, and that is the love of +God, for whom we love our neighbour; for this I think +charity, to love God for himself, and our neighbour for +God. And all that is truly amiable is God, or as it were a +divided piece of him, that retains a reflex or shadow of +himself. Nor is it strange that we should place affection +on that which is invisible: all that we truly love +is thus. What we adore under affection of our senses +deserves not the honour of so pure a title. Thus we +adore virtue, though to the eyes of sense she be invisible. +Thus that part of our noble friends that we +love is not that part that we embrace, but that insensible +part that our arms cannot embrace. God being +all goodness, can love nothing but himself; he loves us +but for that part which is as it were himself, and the +traduction of his Holy Spirit. Let us call to assize the +loves of our parents, the affection of our wives and +children, and they are all dumb shows and dreams, +without reality, truth, or constancy. For first there is +a strong bond of affection between us and our parents; +yet how easily dissolved! We betake ourselves to a +woman, forgetting our mother in a wife, and the womb +that bare us in that which shall bear our image. This +woman blessing us with children, our affection leaves +the level it held before, and sinks from our bed unto +our issue and picture of posterity: where affection holds +no steady mansion; they growing up in years, desire +our ends; or, applying themselves to a woman, take a +lawful way to love another better than ourselves. Thus +I perceive a man may be buried alive, and behold his +grave in his own issue.</p> + +<p><i>Sect.</i> 15.—I conclude therefore, and say, there is no +happiness under (or, as Copernicus<a name="FNanchor_XX._20" id="FNanchor_XX._20"></a><a href="#Footnote_XX._20" class="fnanchor">[XX.]</a> will have it, above) +the sun; nor any crambe<a name="FNanchor_102" id="FNanchor_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a> in that repeated verity and +burthen of all the wisdom of Solomon: “All is vanity +and vexation of spirit;” there is no felicity in that the +world adores. Aristotle, whilst he labours to refute +the <i>ideas</i> of Plato, falls upon one himself: for his +<i>summum bonum</i> is a chimæra; and there is no such +thing as his felicity. That wherein God himself is +happy, the holy angels are happy, in whose defect the +devils are unhappy;—that dare I call happiness: whatsoever +conduceth unto this, may, with an easy metaphor, +deserve that name; whatsoever else the world terms +happiness is, to me, a story out of Pliny, a tale of Bocace +or Malizspini, an apparition or neat delusion, wherein +there is no more of happiness than the name. Bless +me in this life with but the peace of my conscience, +command of my affections, the love of thyself and my +dearest friends, and I shall be happy enough to pity +Cæsar! These are, O Lord, the humble desires of my +most reasonable ambition, and all I dare call happiness +on earth; wherein I set no rule or limit to thy hand or +providence; dispose of me according to the wisdom of +thy pleasure. Thy will be done, though in my own +undoing.</p> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 125px;"> +<img src="images/zill_125.png" width="125" height="109" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 250px;"> +<img src="images/zill_127_1.png" width="250" height="51" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="HYDRIOTAPHIA" id="HYDRIOTAPHIA">HYDRIOTAPHIA.</a></h2> + + +<p class="center">URN BURIAL; OR, A DISCOURSE OF THE SEPULCHRAL URNS +LATELY FOUND IN NORFOLK.</p> + + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 125px;"> +<img src="images/zill_127_2.png" width="125" height="25" alt="" /> +</div> + +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_129_1.jpg" width="450" height="102" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<p class="p2 center">TO MY WORTHY AND HONOURED FRIEND,<br /> + +<span class="large">THOMAS LE GROS,</span><br /> + +OF CROSTWICK, ESQUIRE.</p> + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_129_2.png" width="70" height="70" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">WHEN</span> the general pyre was out, and the last +valediction over, men took a lasting adieu of +their interred friends, little expecting the +curiosity of future ages should comment upon their +ashes; and, having no old experience of the duration +of their relicks, held no opinion of such after-considerations.</p> + +<p>But who knows the fate of his bones, or how often he +is to be buried? Who hath the oracle of his ashes, or +whither they are to be scattered? The relicks of many +lie like the ruins of Pompey’s,<a name="FNanchor_XXI._21" id="FNanchor_XXI._21"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXI._21" class="fnanchor">[XXI.]</a> in all parts of the earth; +and when they arrive at your hands these may seem to +have wandered far, who, in a direct and meridian travel,<a name="FNanchor_XXII._22" id="FNanchor_XXII._22"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXII._22" class="fnanchor">[XXII.]</a> +have but few miles of known earth between yourself +and the pole.</p> + +<p>That the bones of Theseus should be seen again in +Athens<a name="FNanchor_XXIII._23" id="FNanchor_XXIII._23"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXIII._23" class="fnanchor">[XXIII.]</a> was not beyond conjecture and hopeful expectation: +but that these should arise so opportunely to serve +yourself was an hit of fate, and honour beyond prediction.</p> + +<p>We cannot but wish these urns might have the effect +of theatrical vessels and great Hippodrome urns<a name="FNanchor_XXIV._24" id="FNanchor_XXIV._24"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXIV._24" class="fnanchor">[XXIV.]</a> in +Rome, to resound the acclamations and honour due unto +you. But these are sad and sepulchral pitchers, which +have no joyful voices; silently expressing old mortality, +the ruins of forgotten times, and can only speak with +life, how long in this corruptible frame some parts may +be uncorrupted; yet able to outlast bones long unborn, +and noblest pile among us.</p> + +<p>We present not these as any strange sight or spectacle +unknown to your eyes, who have beheld the best of +urns and noblest variety of ashes; who are yourself no +slender master of antiquities, and can daily command +the view of so many imperial faces; which raiseth your +thoughts unto old things and consideration of times +before you, when even living men were antiquities; +when the living might exceed the dead, and to depart +this world could not be properly said to go unto the +greater number.<a name="FNanchor_XXV._25" id="FNanchor_XXV._25"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXV._25" class="fnanchor">[XXV.]</a> And so run up your thoughts upon +the ancient of days, the antiquary’s truest object, unto +whom the eldest parcels are young, and earth itself an +infant, and without Egyptian<a name="FNanchor_XXVI._26" id="FNanchor_XXVI._26"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXVI._26" class="fnanchor">[XXVI.]</a> account makes but small +noise in thousands.</p> + +<p>We were hinted by the occasion, not catched the +opportunity to write of old things, or intrude upon the +antiquary. We are coldly drawn unto discourses of +antiquities, who have scarce time before us to comprehend +new things, or make out learned novelties. But +seeing they arose, as they lay almost in silence among +us, at least in short account suddenly passed over, we +were very unwilling they should die again, and be +buried twice among us.</p> + +<p>Beside, to preserve the living, and make the dead to +live, to keep men out of their urns, and discourse of +human fragments in them, is not impertinent unto our +profession; whose study is life and death, who daily +behold examples of mortality, and of all men least need +artificial <i>mementos</i>, or coffins by our bedside, to mind us +of our graves.</p> + +<p>’Tis time to observe occurrences, and let nothing +remarkable escape us: the supinity of elder days hath +left so much in silence, or time hath so martyred the +records, that the most industrious heads do find no easy +work to erect a new Britannia.</p> + +<p>’Tis opportune to look back upon old times, and contemplate +our forefathers. Great examples grow thin, +and to be fetched from the passed world. Simplicity +flies away, and iniquity comes at long strides upon us. +We have enough to do to make up ourselves from +present and passed times, and the whole stage of things +scarce serveth for our instruction. A complete piece of +virtue must be made from the Centos of all ages, as all +the beauties of Greece could make but one handsome +Venus.</p> + +<p>When the bones of King Arthur were digged up,<a name="FNanchor_XXVII._27" id="FNanchor_XXVII._27"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXVII._27" class="fnanchor">[XXVII.]</a> the +old race might think they beheld therein some originals +of themselves; unto these of our urns none here can +pretend relation, and can only behold the relicks of +those persons who, in their life giving the laws unto +their predecessors, after long obscurity, now lie at their +mercies. But, remembering the early civility they +brought upon these countries, and forgetting long-passed +mischiefs, we mercifully preserve their bones, and piss +not upon their ashes.</p> + +<p>In the offer of these antiquities we drive not at +ancient families, so long outlasted by them. We are +far from erecting your worth upon the pillars of your +forefathers, whose merits you illustrate. We honour +your old virtues, conformable unto times before you, +which are the noblest armoury. And, having long +experience of your friendly conversation, void of empty +formality, full of freedom, constant and generous +honesty, I look upon you as a gem of the old rock,<a name="FNanchor_XXVIII._28" id="FNanchor_XXVIII._28"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXVIII._28" class="fnanchor">[XXVIII.]</a> +and must profess myself even to urn and ashes.—Your +ever faithful Friend and Servant,</p> + +<p class="sig"> +<span class="smcap">Thomas Browne.</span><br /> +</p> + +<p><span class="smcap">Norwich</span>, <i>May 1st</i>.</p> + + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 125px;"> +<img src="images/zill_132.png" width="125" height="125" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_133_1.jpg" width="450" height="100" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<p class="p2 large center">HYDRIOTAPHIA.</p> + + +<h3 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I.</h3> + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_133_2.png" width="70" height="69" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">IN</span> the deep discovery of the subterranean world +a shallow part would satisfy some inquirers; +who, if two or three yards were open about +the surface, would not care to rake the bowels of Potosi,<a name="FNanchor_XXIX._29" id="FNanchor_XXIX._29"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXIX._29" class="fnanchor">[XXIX.]</a> +and regions toward the centre. Nature hath furnished +one part of the earth, and man another. The treasures +of time lie high, in urns, coins, and monuments, scarce +below the roots of some vegetables. Time hath endless +rarities, and shows of all varieties; which reveals old +things in heaven, makes new discoveries in earth, and +even earth itself a discovery. That great antiquity +America lay buried for thousands of years, and a large +part of the earth is still in the urn unto us.</p> + +<p>Though if Adam were made out of an extract of the +earth, all parts might challenge a restitution, yet few +have returned their bones far lower than they might +receive them; not affecting the graves of giants, under +hilly and heavy coverings, but content with less than +their own depth, have wished their bones might lie +soft, and the earth be light upon them. Even such as +hope to rise again, would not be content with central +interment, or so desperately to place their relicks as to +lie beyond discovery; and in no way to be seen again; +which happy contrivance hath made communication +with our forefathers, and left unto our view some parts, +which they never beheld themselves.</p> + +<p>Though earth hath engrossed the name, yet water +hath proved the smartest grave; which in forty days +swallowed almost mankind, and the living creation; +fishes not wholly escaping, except the salt ocean were +handsomely contempered by a mixture of the fresh +element.</p> + +<p>Many have taken voluminous pains to determine the +state of the soul upon disunion; but men have been +most phantastical in the singular contrivances of their +corporal dissolution: whilst the soberest nations have +rested in two ways, of simple inhumation and burning.</p> + +<p>That carnal interment or burying was of the elder +date, the old examples of Abraham and the patriarchs +are sufficient to illustrate; and were without competition, +if it could be made out that Adam was buried +near Damascus, or Mount Calvary, according to some +tradition. God himself, that buried but one, was pleased +to make choice of this way, collectible from Scripture +expression, and the hot contest between Satan and the +archangel about discovering the body of Moses. But +the practice of burning was also of great antiquity, and +of no slender extent. For (not to derive the same from +Hercules) noble descriptions there are hereof in the +Grecian funerals of Homer, in the formal obsequies of +Patroclus and Achilles; and somewhat elder in the +Theban war, and solemn combustion of Meneceus, and +Archemorus, contemporary unto Jair the eighth judge +of Israel. Confirmable also among the Trojans, from +the funeral pyre of Hector, burnt before the gates of +Troy: and the burning of Penthesilea the Amazonian +queen: and long continuance of that practice, in the +inward countries of Asia; while as low as the reign of +Julian, we find that the king of Chionia<a name="FNanchor_XXX._30" id="FNanchor_XXX._30"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXX._30" class="fnanchor">[XXX.]</a> burnt the +body of his son, and interred the ashes in a silver urn.</p> + +<p>The same practice extended also far west; and +besides Herulians, Getes, and Thracians, was in use +with most of the Celtæ, Sarmatians, Germans, Gauls, +Danes, Swedes, Norwegians; not to omit some use +thereof among Carthaginians and Americans. Of +greater antiquity among the Romans than most opinion, +or Pliny seems to allow: for (besides the old table laws<a name="FNanchor_XXXI._31" id="FNanchor_XXXI._31"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXI._31" class="fnanchor">[XXXI.]</a> +of burning or burying within the city, of making the +funeral fire with planed wood, or quenching the fire +with wine), Manlius the consul burnt the body of his +son: Numa, by special clause of his will, was not burnt +but buried; and Remus was solemnly burned, according +to the description of Ovid.<a name="FNanchor_XXXII._32" id="FNanchor_XXXII._32"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXII._32" class="fnanchor">[XXXII.]</a></p> + +<p>Cornelius Sylla was not the first whose body was +burned in Rome, but the first of the Cornelian family; +which being indifferently, not frequently used before; +from that time spread, and became the prevalent +practice. Not totally pursued in the highest run of +cremation; for when even crows were funerally burnt, +Poppæa the wife of Nero found a peculiar grave interment. +Now as all customs were founded upon some +bottom of reason, so there wanted not grounds for this; +according to several apprehensions of the most rational +dissolution. Some being of the opinion of Thales, that +water was the original of all things, thought it most +equal<a name="FNanchor_103" id="FNanchor_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> to submit unto the principle of putrefaction, and +conclude in a moist relentment.<a name="FNanchor_104" id="FNanchor_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a> Others conceived it +most natural to end in fire, as due unto the master +principle in the composition, according to the doctrine +of Heraclitus; and therefore heaped up large piles, +more actively to waft them toward that element, +whereby they also declined a visible degeneration into +worms, and left a lasting parcel of their composition.</p> + +<p>Some apprehended a purifying virtue in fire, refining +the grosser commixture, and firing out the æthereal +particles so deeply immersed in it. And such as by +tradition or rational conjecture held any hint of the +final pyre of all things; or that this element at last +must be too hard for all the rest; might conceive most +naturally of the fiery dissolution. Others pretending +no natural grounds, politickly declined the malice of +enemies upon their buried bodies. Which consideration +led Sylla unto this practice; who having thus served +the body of Marius, could not but fear a retaliation +upon his own; entertained after in the civil wars, and +revengeful contentions of Rome.</p> + +<p>But as many nations embraced, and many left it indifferent, +so others too much affected, or strictly declined +this practice. The Indian Brachmans seemed +too great friends unto fire, who burnt themselves alive +and thought it the noblest way to end their days in +fire; according to the expression of the Indian, burning +himself at Athens, in his last words upon the pyre +unto the amazed spectators, “thus I make myself immortal.”<a name="FNanchor_XXXIII._33" id="FNanchor_XXXIII._33"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXIII._33" class="fnanchor">[XXXIII.]</a></p> + +<p>But the Chaldeans, the great idolaters of fire, abhorred +the burning of their carcases, as a pollution of +that deity. The Persian magi declined it upon the +like scruples, and being only solicitous about their bones, +exposed their flesh to the prey of birds and dogs. And +the Persees now in India, which expose their bodies +unto vultures, and endure not so much as <i>feretra</i> or +biers of wood, the proper fuel of fire, are led on with such +niceties. But whether the ancient Germans, who burned +their dead, held any such fear to pollute their deity of +Herthus, or the earth, we have no authentic conjecture.</p> + +<p>The Egyptians were afraid of fire, not as a deity, but +a devouring element, mercilessly consuming their +bodies, and leaving too little of them; and therefore +by precious embalmments, depositure in dry earths, or +handsome inclosure in glasses, contrived the notablest +ways of integral conservation. And from such Egyptian +scruples, imbibed by Pythagoras, it may be conjectured +that Numa and the Pythagorical sect first +waived the fiery solution.</p> + +<p>The Scythians, who swore by wind and sword, that +is, by life and death, were so far from burning their +bodies, that they declined all interment, and made their +graves in the air: and the Ichthyophagi, or fish-eating +nations about Egypt, affected the sea for their grave; +thereby declining visible corruption, and restoring the +debt of their bodies. Whereas the old heroes, in +Homer, dreaded nothing more than water or drowning; +probably upon the old opinion of the fiery substance of +the soul, only extinguishable by that element; and +therefore the poet emphatically implieth<a name="FNanchor_XXXIV._34" id="FNanchor_XXXIV._34"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXIV._34" class="fnanchor">[XXXIV.]</a> the total +destruction in this kind of death, which happened to +Ajax Oileus.</p> + +<p>The old Balearians had a peculiar mode, for they +used great urns and much wood, but no fire in their +burials, while they bruised the flesh and bones of the +dead, crowded them into urns, and laid heaps of wood +upon them. And the Chinese without cremation or +urnal interment of their bodies, make use of trees and +much burning, while they plant a pine-tree by their +grave, and burn great numbers of printed draughts of +slaves and horses over it, civilly content with their +companies in <i>effigy</i>, which barbarous nations exact unto +reality.</p> + +<p>Christians abhorred this way of obsequies, and though +they sticked not to give their bodies to be burnt in their +lives, detested that mode after death: affecting rather a +depositure than absumption, and properly submitting +unto the sentence of God, to return not unto ashes but +unto dust again, and conformable unto the practice of +the patriarchs, the interment of our Saviour, of Peter, +Paul, and the ancient martyrs. And so far at last declining +promiscuous interment with Pagans, that some +have suffered ecclesiastical censures,<a name="FNanchor_XXXV._35" id="FNanchor_XXXV._35"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXV._35" class="fnanchor">[XXXV.]</a> for making no +scruple thereof.</p> + +<p>The Mussulman believers will never admit this fiery +resolution. For they hold a present trial from their +black and white angels in the grave; which they must +have made so hollow, that they may rise upon their +knees.</p> + +<p>The Jewish nation, though they entertained the old +way of inhumation, yet sometimes admitted this +practice. For the men of Jabesh burnt the body of +Saul; and by no prohibited practice, to avoid contagion +or pollution, in time of pestilence, burnt the bodies of +their friends.<a name="FNanchor_XXXVI._36" id="FNanchor_XXXVI._36"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXVI._36" class="fnanchor">[XXXVI.]</a> And when they burnt not their dead +bodies, yet sometimes used great burnings near and +about them, deducible from the expressions concerning +Jehoram, Zedechias, and the sumptuous pyre of Asa. +And were so little averse from Pagan burning, that the +Jews lamenting the death of Cæsar their friend, and +revenger on Pompey, frequented the place where his +body was burnt for many nights together. And as +they raised noble monuments and mausoleums for their +own nation,<a name="FNanchor_XXXVII._37" id="FNanchor_XXXVII._37"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXVII._37" class="fnanchor">[XXXVII.]</a> so they were not scrupulous in erecting +some for others, according to the practice of Daniel, who +left that lasting sepulchral pile in Ecbatana, for the +Median and Persian kings.<a name="FNanchor_XXXVIII._38" id="FNanchor_XXXVIII._38"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXVIII._38" class="fnanchor">[XXXVIII.]</a></p> + +<p>But even in times of subjection and hottest use, they +conformed not unto the Roman practice of burning; +whereby the prophecy was secured concerning the body +of Christ, that it should not see corruption, or a bone +should not be broken; which we believe was also providentially +prevented, from the soldier’s spear and nails +that passed by the little bones both in his hands and +feet; not of ordinary contrivance, that it should not +corrupt on the cross, according to the laws of Roman +crucifixion, or an hair of his head perish, though observable +in Jewish customs, to cut the hair of malefactors.</p> + +<p>Nor in their long cohabitation with Egyptians, crept +into a custom of their exact embalming, wherein deeply +slashing the muscles, and taking out the brains and entrails, +they had broken the subject of so entire a resurrection, +nor fully answered the types of Enoch, Elijah, +or Jonah, which yet to prevent or restore, was of equal +facility unto that rising power able to break the fasciations +and bands of death, to get clear out of the cerecloth, +and an hundred pounds of ointment, and out of the +sepulchre before the stone was rolled from it.</p> + +<p>But though they embraced not this practice of burning, +yet entertained they many ceremonies agreeable +unto Greek and Roman obsequies. And he that observeth +their funeral feasts, their lamentations at the +grave, their music, and weeping mourners; how they +closed the eyes of their friends, how they washed, +anointed, and kissed the dead; may easily conclude +these were not mere Pagan civilities. But whether +that mournful burthen, and treble calling out after +Absalom, had any reference unto the last conclamation, +and triple valediction, used by other nations, we hold +but a wavering conjecture.</p> + +<p>Civilians make sepulture but of the law of nations, +others do naturally found it and discover it also in +animals. They that are so thick-skinned as still to +credit the story of the Phœnix, may say something for +animal burning. More serious conjectures find some +examples of sepulture in elephants, cranes, the sepulchral +cells of pismires, and practice of bees,—which +civil society carrieth out their dead, and hath exequies, +if not interments.</p> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h3 class="nobreak">CHAPTER II.</h3> + +</div> + +<p><span class="smcap">The</span> solemnities, ceremonies, rites of their cremation +or interment, so solemnly delivered by authors, we +shall not disparage our reader to repeat. Only the last +and lasting part in their urns, collected bones and ashes, +we cannot wholly omit or decline that subject, which +occasion lately presented, in some discovered among us.</p> + +<p>In a field of Old Walsingham, not many months past, +were digged up between forty and fifty urns, deposited +in a dry and sandy soil, not a yard deep, nor far from +one another.—Not all strictly of one figure, but most +answering these described; some containing two pounds +of bones, and teeth, with fresh impressions of their combustion; +besides the extraneous substances, like pieces +of small boxes, or combs handsomely wrought, handles +of small brass instruments, brazen nippers, and in one +some kind of opal.</p> + +<p>Near the same plot of ground, for about six yards +compass, were digged up coals and incinerated substances, +which begat conjecture that this was the <i>ustrina</i> +or place of burning their bodies, or some sacrificing +place unto the <i>Manes</i>, which was properly below the +surface of the ground, as the <i>aræ</i> and altars unto the +gods and heroes above it.</p> + +<p>That these were the urns of Romans from the common +custom and place where they were found, is no obscure +conjecture, not far from a Roman garrison, and but five +miles from Brancaster, set down by ancient record under +the name of Branodunum. And where the adjoining +town, containing seven parishes, in no very different +sound, but Saxon termination, still retains the name of +Burnham, which being an early station, it is not improbable +the neighbour parts were filled with habitations, +either of Romans themselves, or Britons Romanized, +which observed the Roman customs.</p> + +<p>Nor is it improbable, that the Romans early possessed +this country. For though we meet not with such strict +particulars of these parts before the new institution of +Constantine and military charge of the count of the +Saxon shore, and that about the Saxon invasions, the +Dalmatian horsemen were in the garrison of Brancaster; +yet in the time of Claudius, Vespasian, and Severus, we +find no less than three legions dispersed through the +province of Britain. And as high as the reign of +Claudius a great overthrow was given unto the Iceni, +by the Roman lieutenant Ostorius. Not long after, the +country was so molested, that, in hope of a better state, +Prastaagus bequeathed his kingdom unto Nero and his +daughters; and Boadicea, his queen, fought the last +decisive battle with Paulinus. After which time, and +conquest of Agricola, the lieutenant of Vespasian, probable +it is, they wholly possessed this country; ordering +it into garrisons or habitations best suitable with their +securities. And so some Roman habitations not improbable +in these parts, as high as the time of Vespasian, +where the Saxons after seated, in whose thin-filled maps +we yet find the name of Walsingham. Now if the Iceni +were but Gammadims, Anconians, or men that lived in +an angle, wedge, or elbow of Britain, according to the +original etymology, this country will challenge the +emphatical appellation, as most properly making the +elbow or <i>iken</i> of Icenia.</p> + +<p>That Britain was notably populous is undeniable, from +that expression of Cæsar.<a name="FNanchor_XXXIX._39" id="FNanchor_XXXIX._39"></a><a href="#Footnote_XXXIX._39" class="fnanchor">[XXXIX.]</a> That the Romans themselves +were early in no small numbers—seventy thousand, +with their associates, slain, by Boadicea, affords a sure +account. And though not many Roman habitations +are now known, yet some, by old works, rampiers, +coins, and urns, do testify their possessions. Some urns +have been found at Castor, some also about Southcreak, +and, not many years past, no less than ten in a field at +Buxton, not near any recorded garrison. Nor is it +strange to find Roman coins of copper and silver among +us; of Vespasian, Trajan, Adrian, Commodus, Antoninus, +Severus, &c.; but the greater number of Dioclesian, +Constantine, Constans, Valens, with many of +Victorinus Posthumius, Tetricus, and the thirty tyrants +in the reign of Gallienus; and some as high as Adrianus +have been found about Thetford, or Sitomagus, mentioned +in the <i>Itinerary</i> of Antoninus, as the way from Venta or +Castor unto London. But the most frequent discovery +is made at the two Castors by Norwich and Yarmouth +at Burghcastle, and Brancaster.</p> + +<p>Besides the Norman, Saxon, and Danish pieces of +Cuthred, Canutus, William, Matilda, and others, some +British coins of gold have been dispersedly found, and +no small number of silver pieces near Norwich, with a +rude head upon the obverse, and an ill-formed horse +on the reverse, with inscriptions <i>Ic. Duro. T.;</i> whether +implying Iceni, Durotriges, Tascia, or Trinobantes, we +leave to higher conjecture. Vulgar chronology will +have Norwich Castle as old as Julius Cæsar; but his +distance from these parts, and its Gothick form of +structure, abridgeth such antiquity. The British coins +afford conjecture of early habitation in these parts, +though the city of Norwich arose from the ruins of +Venta; and though, perhaps, not without some habitation +before, was enlarged, builded, and nominated by +the Saxons. In what bulk or populosity it stood in the +old East-Angle monarchy tradition and history are +silent. Considerable it was in the Danish eruptions, +when Sueno burnt Thetford and Norwich, and Ulfketel, +the governor thereof, was able to make some resistance, +and after endeavoured to burn the Danish navy.</p> + +<p>How the Romans left so many coins in countries of +their conquests seems of hard resolution; except we +consider how they buried them under ground when, +upon barbarous invasions, they were fain to desert their +habitations in most part of their empire, and the strictness +of their laws forbidding to transfer them to any +other uses: wherein the Spartans were singular, who, +to make their copper money useless, contempered it with +vinegar. That the Britons left any, some wonder, since +their money was iron and iron rings before Cæsar; and +those of after-stamp by permission, and but small in +bulk and bigness. That so few of the Saxons remain, +because, overcome by succeeding conquerors upon the +place, their coins, by degrees, passed into other stamps +and the marks of after-ages.</p> + +<p>Than the time of these urns deposited, or precise +antiquity of these relicks, nothing of more uncertainty; +for since the lieutenant of Claudius seems to have made +the first progress into these parts, since Boadicea was +overthrown by the forces of Nero, and Agricola put a +full end to these conquests, it is not probable the country +was fully garrisoned or planted before; and, therefore, +however these urns might be of later date, not likely of +higher antiquity.</p> + +<p>And the succeeding emperors desisted not from their +conquests in these and other parts, as testified by history +and medal-inscription yet extant: the province of +Britain, in so divided a distance from Rome, beholding +the faces of many imperial persons, and in large account; +no fewer than Cæsar, Claudius, Britannicus, Vespasian, +Titus, Adrian, Severus, Commodus, Geta, and Caracalla.</p> + +<p>A great obscurity herein, because no medal or emperor’s +coin enclosed, which might denote the date of +their interments; observable in many urns, and found +in those of Spitalfields, by London, which contained the +coins of Claudius, Vespasian, Commodus, Antoninus, +attended with lacrymatories, lamps, bottles of liquor, +and other appurtenances of affectionate superstition, +which in these rural interments were wanting.</p> + +<p>Some uncertainty there is from the period or term of +burning, or the cessation of that practice. Macrobius +affirmeth it was disused in his days; but most agree, +though without authentic record, that it ceased with the +Antonini,—most safely to be understood after the reign +of those emperors which assumed the name of Antoninus, +extending unto Heliogabalus. Not strictly after Marcus; +for about fifty years later, we find the magnificent burning +and consecration of Servus; and, if we so fix this +period or cessation, these urns will challenge above +thirteen hundred years.</p> + +<p>But whether this practice was only then left by emperors +and great persons, or generally about Rome, and +not in other provinces, we hold no authentic account; +for after Tertullian, in the days of Minucius, it was +obviously objected upon Christians, that they condemned +the practice of burning.<a name="FNanchor_XL._40" id="FNanchor_XL._40"></a><a href="#Footnote_XL._40" class="fnanchor">[XL.]</a> And we find a passage +in Sidonius, which asserteth that practice in France +unto a lower account. And, perhaps, not fully disused +till Christianity fully established, which gave the final +extinction to these sepulchral bonfires.</p> + +<p>Whether they were the bones of men, or women, or +children, no authentic decision from ancient custom in +distinct places of burial. Although not improbably +conjectured, that the double sepulture, or burying-place +of Abraham, had in it such intention. But from exility +of bones, thinness of skulls, smallness of teeth, ribs, and +thigh-bones, not improbable that many thereof were +persons of minor age, or woman. Confirmable also from +things contained in them. In most were found substances +resembling combs, plates like boxes, fastened +with iron pins, and handsomely overwrought like the +necks or bridges of musical instruments; long brass +plates overwrought like the handles of neat implements; +brazen nippers, to pull away hair; and in one a kind +of opal, yet maintaining a bluish colour.</p> + +<p>Now that they accustomed to burn or bury with them, +things wherein they excelled, delighted, or which were +dear unto them, either as farewells unto all pleasure, or +vain apprehension that they might use them in the +other world, is testified by all antiquity, observable +from the gem or beryl ring upon the finger of Cynthia, +the mistress of Propertius, when after her funeral pyre +her ghost appeared unto him; and notably illustrated +from the contents of that Roman urn preserved by +Cardinal Farnese, wherein besides great number of +gems with heads of gods and goddesses, were found an +ape of agath, a grasshopper, an elephant of amber, a +crystal ball, three glasses, two spoons, and six nuts of +crystal; and beyond the content of urns, in the monument +of Childerick the first, and fourth king from +Pharamond, casually discovered three years past at +Tournay, restoring unto the world much gold richly +adorning his sword, two hundred rubies, many hundred +imperial coins, three hundred golden bees, the bones +and horse-shoes of his horse interred with him, according +to the barbarous magnificence of those days in +their sepulchral obsequies. Although, if we steer by +the conjecture of many a Septuagint expression, some +trace thereof may be found even with the ancient +Hebrews, not only from the sepulchral treasure of David, +but the circumcision knives which Joshua also buried.</p> + +<p>Some men, considering the contents of these urns, +lasting pieces and toys included in them, and the custom +of burning with many other nations, might somewhat +doubt whether all urns found among us, were properly +Roman relicks, or some not belonging unto our British, +Saxon, or Danish forefathers.</p> + +<p>In the form of burial among the ancient Britons, the +large discourses of Cæsar, Tacitus, and Strabo are silent. +For the discovery whereof, with other particulars, we +much deplore the loss of that letter which Cicero expected +or received from his brother Quintus, as a resolution +of British customs; or the account which might +have been made by Scribonius Largus, the physician, +accompanying the Emperor Claudius, who might have +also discovered that frugal bit of the old Britons, which +in the bigness of a bean could satisfy their thirst and +hunger.</p> + +<p>But that the Druids and ruling priests used to burn +and bury, is expressed by Pomponius; that Bellinus, +the brother of Brennus, and King of the Britons, was +burnt, is acknowledged by Polydorus, as also by Amandus +Zierexensis in <i>Historia</i> and Pineda in his <i>Universa +Historia</i> (Spanish). That they held that practice in +Gallia, Cæsar expressly delivereth. Whether the Britons +(probably descended from them, of like religion, language, +and manners) did not sometimes make use of +burning, or whether at least such as were after civilized +unto the Roman life and manners, conformed not unto +this practice, we have no historical assertion or denial. +But since, from the account of Tacitus, the Romans +early wrought so much civility upon the British stock, +that they brought them to build temples, to wear the +gown, and study the Roman laws and language, that +they conformed also unto their religious rites and customs +in burials, seems no improbable conjecture.</p> + +<p>That burning the dead was used in Sarmatia is affirmed +by Gaguinus; that the Sueons and Gathlanders used to +burn their princes and great persons, is delivered by +Saxo and Olaus; that this was the old German practice, +is also asserted by Tacitus. And though we are bare in +historical particulars of such obsequies in this island, or +that the Saxons, Jutes, and Angles burnt their dead, +yet came they from parts where ’twas of ancient practice; +the Germans using it, from whom they were descended. +And even in Jutland and Sleswick in Anglia Cymbrica, +urns with bones were found not many years before us.</p> + +<p>But the Danish and northern nations have raised an +era or point of compute from their custom of burning +their dead: some deriving it from Unguinus, some from +Frotho the great, who ordained by law, that princes and +chief commanders should be committed unto the fire, +though the common sort had the common grave interment. +So Starkatterus, that old hero, was burnt, and +Ringo royally burnt the body of Harold the king slain +by him.</p> + +<p>What time this custom generally expired in that nation, +we discern no assured period; whether it ceased +before Christianity, or upon their conversion, by Ausgurius +the Gaul, in the time of Ludovicus Pius, the son +of Charles the Great, according to good computes; or +whether it might not be used by some persons, while +for an hundred and eighty years Paganism and Christianity +were promiscuously embraced among them, there +is no assured conclusion. About which times the Danes +were busy in England, and particularly infested this +country; where many castles and strongholds were +built by them, or against them, and great number of +names and families still derived from them. But since +this custom was probably disused before their invasion +or conquest, and the Romans confessedly practised the +same since their possession of this island, the most +assured account will fall upon the Romans, or Britons +Romanized.</p> + +<p>However, certain it is, that urns conceived of no +Roman original, are often digged up both in Norway +and Denmark, handsomely described, and graphically +represented by the learned physician Wormius. And +in some parts of Denmark in no ordinary number, as +stands delivered by authors exactly describing those +countries. And they contained not only bones, but +many other substances in them, as knives, pieces of +iron, brass, and wood, and one of Norway a brass gilded +jew’s-harp.</p> + +<p>Nor were they confused or careless in disposing the +noblest sort, while they placed large stones in circle +about the urns or bodies which they interred: somewhat +answerable unto the monument of Rollrich stones in +England, or sepulchral monument probably erected by +Rollo, who after conquered Normandy; where ’tis not +improbable somewhat might be discovered. Meanwhile +to what nation or person belonged that large urn found +at Ashbury,<a name="FNanchor_XLI._41" id="FNanchor_XLI._41"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLI._41" class="fnanchor">[XLI.]</a> containing mighty bones, and a buckler; +what those large urns found at Little Massingham;<a name="FNanchor_XLII._42" id="FNanchor_XLII._42"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLII._42" class="fnanchor">[XLII.]</a> +or why the Anglesea urns are placed with their mouths +downward, remains yet undiscovered.</p> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h3 class="nobreak">CHAPTER III.</h3> + +</div> + +<p><span class="smcap">Plaistered</span> and whited sepulchres were anciently +affected in cadaverous and corrupted burials; and the +rigid Jews were wont to garnish the sepulchres of the +righteous.<a name="FNanchor_XLIII._43" id="FNanchor_XLIII._43"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLIII._43" class="fnanchor">[XLIII.]</a> Ulysses, in Hecuba, cared not how meanly +he lived, so he might find a noble tomb after death.<a name="FNanchor_XLIV._44" id="FNanchor_XLIV._44"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLIV._44" class="fnanchor">[XLIV.]</a> +Great princes affected great monuments; and the fair +and larger urns contained no vulgar ashes, which makes +that disparity in those which time discovereth among +us. The present urns were not of one capacity, the +largest containing above a gallon, some not much above +half that measure; nor all of one figure, wherein there +is no strict conformity in the same or different countries; +observable from those represented by Casalius, Bosio, +and others, though all found in Italy; while many +have handles, ears, and long necks, but most imitate a +circular figure, in a spherical and round composure; +whether from any mystery, best duration or capacity, +were but a conjecture. But the common form with +necks was a proper figure, making our last bed like our +first; nor much unlike the urns of our nativity while +we lay in the nether part of the earth,<a name="FNanchor_XLV._45" id="FNanchor_XLV._45"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLV._45" class="fnanchor">[XLV.]</a> and inward +vault of our microcosm. Many urns are red, these but +of a black colour somewhat smooth, and dully sounding, +which begat some doubt, whether they were burnt, or +only baked in oven or sun, according to the ancient way, +in many bricks, tiles, pots, and testaceous works; and, +as the word <i>testa</i> is properly to be taken, when occurring +without addition and chiefly intended by Pliny, +when he commendeth bricks and tiles of two years old, +and to make them in the spring. Nor only these concealed +pieces, but the open magnificence of antiquity, +ran much in the artifice of clay. Hereof the house of +Mausolus was built, thus old Jupiter stood in the Capitol, +and the statua of Hercules, made in the reign of Tarquinius +Priscus, was extant in Pliny’s days. And such +as declined burning or funeral urns, affected coffins of +clay, according to the mode of Pythagoras, a way preferred +by Varro. But the spirit of great ones was above +these circumscriptions, affecting copper, silver, gold, and +porphyry urns, wherein Severus lay, after a serious +view and sentence on that which should contain him.<a name="FNanchor_XLVI._46" id="FNanchor_XLVI._46"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLVI._46" class="fnanchor">[XLVI.]</a> +Some of these urns were thought to have been silvered +over, from sparklings in several pots, with small tinsel +parcels; uncertain whether from the earth, or the first +mixture in them.</p> + +<p>Among these urns we could obtain no good account +of their coverings; only one seemed arched over with +some kind of brickwork. Of those found at Buxton, +some were covered with flints, some, in other parts, with +tiles; those at Yarmouth Caster were closed with Roman +bricks, and some have proper earthen covers adapted +and fitted to them. But in the Homerical urn of +Patroclus, whatever was the solid tegument, we find the +immediate covering to be a purple piece of silk: and +such as had no covers might have the earth closely +pressed into them, after which disposure were probably +some of these, wherein we found the bones and ashes +half mortared unto the sand and sides of the urn, and +some long roots of quich, or dog’s-grass, wreathed about +the bones.</p> + +<p>No Lamps, included liquors, lacrymatories, or tear +bottles, attended these rural urns, either as sacred unto +the <i>manes</i>, or passionate expressions of their surviving +friends. While with rich flames, and hired tears, they +solemnized their obsequies, and in the most lamented +monuments made one part of their inscriptions.<a name="FNanchor_XLVII._47" id="FNanchor_XLVII._47"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLVII._47" class="fnanchor">[XLVII.]</a> Some +find sepulchral vessels containing liquors, which time +hath incrassated into jellies. For, besides these lacrymatories, +notable lamps, with vessels of oils, and aromatical +liquors, attended noble ossuaries; and some +yet retaining a vinosity and spirit in them, which, if +any have tasted, they have far exceeded the palates of +antiquity. Liquors not to be computed by years of +annual magistrates, but by great conjunctions and the +fatal periods of kingdoms.<a name="FNanchor_XLVIII._48" id="FNanchor_XLVIII._48"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLVIII._48" class="fnanchor">[XLVIII.]</a> The draughts of consulary +date were but crude unto these, and Opimian wine but +in the must unto them.<a name="FNanchor_XLIX._49" id="FNanchor_XLIX._49"></a><a href="#Footnote_XLIX._49" class="fnanchor">[XLIX.]</a></p> + +<p>In sundry graves and sepulchres we meet with rings, +coins, and chalices. Ancient frugality was so severe, +that they allowed no gold to attend the corpse, but only +that which served to fasten their teeth. Whether the +Opaline stone in this were burnt upon the finger of the +dead, or cast into the fire by some affectionate friend, +it will consist with either custom. But other incinerable +substances were found so fresh, that they could +feel no singe from fire. These, upon view, were judged +to be wood; but, sinking in water, and tried by the +fire, we found them to be bone or ivory. In their +hardness and yellow colour they most resembled box, +which, in old expressions, found the epithet of eternal, +and perhaps in such conservatories might have passed +uncorrupted.</p> + +<p>That bay leaves were found green in the tomb of S. +Humbert, after an hundred and fifty years, was looked +upon as miraculous. Remarkable it was unto old +spectators, that the cypress of the temple of Diana lasted +so many hundred years. The wood of the ark, and +olive-rod of Aaron, were older at the captivity; but +the cypress of the ark of Noah was the greatest vegetable +of antiquity, if Josephus were not deceived by some +fragments of it in his days: to omit the moor logs +and fir trees found underground in many parts of +England; the undated ruins of winds, floods, or earthquakes, +and which in Flanders still show from what +quarter they fell, as generally lying in a north-east +position.</p> + +<p>But though we found not these pieces to be wood, according +to first apprehensions, yet we missed not altogether +of some woody substance; for the bones were +not so clearly picked but some coals were found amongst +them; a way to make wood perpetual, and a fit associate +for metal, whereon was laid the foundation of the great +Ephesian temple, and which were made the lasting tests +of old boundaries and landmarks. Whilst we look on +these, we admire not observations of coals found fresh +after four hundred years. In a long-deserted habitation +even egg-shells have been found fresh, not tending to +corruption.</p> + +<p>In the monument of King Childerick the iron relicks +were found all rusty and crumbling into pieces; but +our little iron pins, which fastened the ivory works, +held well together, and lost not their magnetical quality, +though wanting a tenacious moisture for the firmer +union of parts; although it be hardly drawn into fusion, +yet that metal soon submitteth unto rust and dissolution. +In the brazen pieces we admired not the duration, +but the freedom from rust, and ill savour, upon the +hardest attrition; but now exposed unto the piercing +atoms of air, in the space of a few months, they begin +to spot and betray their green entrails. We conceive +not these urns to have descended thus naked as they +appear, or to have entered their graves without the old +habit of flowers. The urn of Philopœmen was so laden +with flowers and ribbons, that it afforded no sight of +itself. The rigid Lycurgus allowed olive and myrtle. +The Athenians might fairly except against the practice +of Democritus, to be buried up in honey, as fearing to +embezzle a great commodity of their country, and the +best of that kind in Europe. But Plato seemed too +frugally politick, who allowed no larger monument +than would contain four heroick verses, and designed +the most barren ground for sepulture: though we cannot +commend the goodness of that sepulchral ground +which was set at no higher rate than the mean salary +of Judas. Though the earth had confounded the ashes +of these ossuaries, yet the bones were so smartly burnt, +that some thin plates of brass were found half melted +among them. Whereby we apprehend they were not +of the meanest caresses, perfunctorily fired, as sometimes +in military, and commonly in pestilence, burnings; +or after the manner of abject corpses, huddled +forth and carelessly burnt, without the Esquiline Port +at Rome; which was an affront continued upon Tiberius, +while they but half burnt his body, and in the amphitheatre, +according to the custom in notable malefactors;<a name="FNanchor_L._50" id="FNanchor_L._50"></a><a href="#Footnote_L._50" class="fnanchor">[L.]</a> +whereas Nero seemed not so much to fear his +death as that his head should be cut off and his body +not burnt entire.</p> + +<p>Some, finding many fragments of skulls in these urns, +suspected a mixture of bones; in none we searched was +there cause of such conjecture, though sometimes they +declined not that practice.—The ashes of Domitian +were mingled with those of Julia; of Achilles with +those of Patroclus. All urns contained not single ashes; +without confused burnings they affectionately compounded +their bones; passionately endeavouring to +continue their living unions. And when distance of +death denied such conjunctions, unsatisfied affections +conceived some satisfaction to be neighbours in the +grave, to lie urn by urn, and touch but in their manes. +And many were so curious to continue their living relations, +that they contrived large and family urns, wherein +the ashes of their nearest friends and kindred might +successively be received, at least some parcels thereof, +while their collateral memorials lay in minor vessels +about them.</p> + +<p>Antiquity held too light thoughts from objects of +mortality, while some drew provocatives of mirth from +anatomies,<a name="FNanchor_LI._51" id="FNanchor_LI._51"></a><a href="#Footnote_LI._51" class="fnanchor">[LI.]</a> and jugglers showed tricks with skeletons. +When fiddlers made not so pleasant mirth as fencers, +and men could sit with quiet stomachs, while hanging +was played before them.<a name="FNanchor_LII._52" id="FNanchor_LII._52"></a><a href="#Footnote_LII._52" class="fnanchor">[LII.]</a> Old considerations made few +mementos by skulls and bones upon their monuments. +In the Egyptian obelisks and hieroglyphical figures it +is not easy to meet with bones. The sepulchral lamps +speak nothing less than sepulture, and in their literal +draughts prove often obscene and antick pieces. Where +we find <i>D. M.</i><a name="FNanchor_LIII._53" id="FNanchor_LIII._53"></a><a href="#Footnote_LIII._53" class="fnanchor">[LIII.]</a> it is obvious to meet with sacrificing +<i>pateras</i> and vessels of libation upon old sepulchral +monuments. In the Jewish hypogæum and subterranean +cell at Rome, was little observable beside the +variety of lamps and frequent draughts of Anthony and +Jerome we meet with thigh-bones and death’s-heads; +but the cemeterial cells of ancient Christians and +martyrs were filled with draughts of Scripture stories; +not declining the flourishes of cypress, palms, and olive, +and the mystical figures of peacocks, doves, and cocks; +but iterately affecting the portraits of Enoch, Lazarus, +Jonas, and the vision of Ezekiel, as hopeful draughts, +and hinting imagery of the resurrection, which is the +life of the grave, and sweetens our habitations in the +land of moles and pismires.</p> + +<p>Gentle inscriptions precisely delivered the extent of +men’s lives, seldom the manner of their deaths, which +history itself so often leaves obscure in the records of +memorable persons. There is scarce any philosopher but +dies twice or thrice in Laertius; nor almost any life +without two or three deaths in Plutarch; which makes +the tragical ends of noble persons more favourably resented +by compassionate readers who find some relief +in the election of such differences.</p> + +<p>The certainty of death is attended with uncertainties, +in time, manner, places. The variety of monuments +hath often obscured true graves; and cenotaphs confounded +sepulchres. For beside their real tombs, many +have found honorary and empty sepulchres. The +variety of Homer’s monuments made him of various +countries. Euripides had his tomb in Africa, but his +sepulture in Macedonia. And Severus found his real +sepulchre in Rome, but his empty grave in Gallia.</p> + +<p>He that lay in a golden urn eminently above the earth, +was not like to find the quiet of his bones. Many of +these urns were broke by a vulgar discoverer in hope of +enclosed treasure. The ashes of Marcellus were lost +above ground, upon the like account. Where profit +hath prompted, no age hath wanted such miners. For +which the most barbarous expilators found the most +civil rhetorick. Gold once out of the earth is no more +due unto it; what was unreasonably committed to the +ground, is reasonably resumed from it; let monuments +and rich fabricks, not riches, adorn men’s ashes. The +commerce of the living is not to be transferred unto the +dead; it is not injustice to take that which none complains +to lose, and no man is wronged where no man is +possessor.</p> + +<p>What virtue yet sleeps in this <i>terra damnata</i> and aged +cinders, were petty magic to experiment. These crumbling +relicks and long fired particles superannuate such +expectations; bones, hairs, nails, and teeth of the dead, +were the treasures of old sorcerers. In vain we revive +such practices; present superstition too visibly perpetuates +the folly of our forefathers, wherein unto old +observation this island was so complete, that it might +have instructed Persia.</p> + +<p>Plato’s historian of the other world lies twelve days +incorrupted, while his soul was viewing the large stations +of the dead. How to keep the corpse seven days from +corruption by anointing and washing, without extenteration, +were an hazardable piece of art, in our choicest +practice. How they made distinct separation of bones +and ashes from fiery admixture, hath found no historical +solution; though they seemed to make a distinct collection +and overlooked not Pyrrhus his toe. Some provision +they might make by fictile vessels, coverings, +tiles, or flat stones, upon and about the body (and in +the same field, not far from these urns, many stones were +found underground), as also by careful separation of +extraneous matter composing and raking up the burnt +bones with forks, observable in that notable lamp of +Galvanus Martianus, who had the sight of the <i>vas +ustrinum</i> or vessel wherein they burnt the dead, found +in the Esquiline field at Rome, might have afforded +clearer solution. But their insatisfaction herein begat +that remarkable invention in the funeral pyres of some +princes, by incombustible sheets made with a texture of +asbestos, incremable flax, or salamander’s wool, which +preserved their bones and ashes incommixed.</p> + +<p>How the bulk of a man should sink into so few pounds +of bones and ashes, may seem strange unto any who +considers not its constitution, and how slender a mass +will remain upon an open and urging fire of the carnal +composition. Even bones themselves, reduced into +ashes, do abate a notable proportion. And consisting +much of a volatile salt, when that is fired out, make a +light kind of cinders. Although their bulk be disproportionable +to their weight, when the heavy principle +of salt is fired out, and the earth almost only remaineth; +observable in sallow, which makes more ashes than oak, +and discovers the common fraud of selling ashes by +measure, and not by ponderation.</p> + +<p>Some bones make best skeletons, some bodies quick +and speediest ashes. Who would expect a quick flame +from hydropical Heraclitus? The poisoned soldier +when his belly brake, put out two pyres in Plutarch. +But in the plague of Athens, one private pyre served +two or three intruders; and the Saracens burnt in large +heaps, by the king of Castile, showed how little fuel +sufficeth. Though the funeral pyre of Patroclus took +up an hundred foot,<a name="FNanchor_LIV._54" id="FNanchor_LIV._54"></a><a href="#Footnote_LIV._54" class="fnanchor">[LIV.]</a> a piece of an old boat burnt Pompey; +and if the burthen of Isaac were sufficient for an holocaust, +a man may carry his own pyre.</p> + +<p>From animals are drawn good burning lights, and +good medicines against burning. Though the seminal +humour seems of a contrary nature to fire, yet the body +completed proves a combustible lump, wherein fire +finds flame even from bones, and some fuel almost from +all parts; though the metropolis of humidity<a name="FNanchor_LV._55" id="FNanchor_LV._55"></a><a href="#Footnote_LV._55" class="fnanchor">[LV.]</a> seems +least disposed unto it, which might render the skulls of +these urns less burned than other bones. But all flies +or sinks before fire almost in all bodies: when the common +ligament is dissolved, the attenuable parts ascend, +the rest subside in coal, calx, or ashes.</p> + +<p>To burn the bones of the king of Edom for lime,<a name="FNanchor_LVI._56" id="FNanchor_LVI._56"></a><a href="#Footnote_LVI._56" class="fnanchor">[LVI.]</a> +seems no irrational ferity; but to drink of the ashes +of dead relations,<a name="FNanchor_LVII._57" id="FNanchor_LVII._57"></a><a href="#Footnote_LVII._57" class="fnanchor">[LVII.]</a> a passionate prodigality. He that +hath the ashes of his friend, hath an everlasting +treasure; where fire taketh leave, corruption slowly +enters. In bones well burnt, fire makes a wall against +itself; experimented in Copels,<a name="FNanchor_105" id="FNanchor_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a> and tests of metals, +which consist of such ingredients. What the sun compoundeth, +fire analyzeth, not transmuteth. That devouring +agent leaves almost always a morsel for the +earth, whereof all things are but a colony; and which, +if time permits, the mother element will have in their +primitive mass again.</p> + +<p>He that looks for urns and old sepulchral relicks, must +not seek them in the ruins of temples, where no religion +anciently placed them. These were found in a field, +according to ancient custom, in noble or private burial; +the old practice of the Canaanites, the family of Abraham, +and the burying-place of Joshua, in the borders +of his possessions; and also agreeable unto Roman +practice to bury by highways, whereby their monuments +were under eye:—memorials of themselves, and +mementoes of mortality unto living passengers; whom +the epitaphs of great ones were fain to beg to stay and +look upon them,—a language though sometimes used, +not so proper in church inscriptions.<a name="FNanchor_LVIII._58" id="FNanchor_LVIII._58"></a><a href="#Footnote_LVIII._58" class="fnanchor">[LVIII.]</a> The sensible +rhetorick of the dead, to exemplarity of good life, first +admitted to the bones of pious men and martyrs within +church walls, which in succeeding ages crept into promiscuous +practice: while Constantine was peculiarly +favoured to be admitted into the church porch, and the +first thus buried in England, was in the days of Cuthred.</p> + +<p>Christians dispute how their bodies should lie in the +grave. In urnal interment they clearly escaped this +controversy. Though we decline the religious consideration, +yet in cemeterial and narrower burying-places, to +avoid confusion and cross-position, a certain posture +were to be admitted: which even Pagan civility observed. +The Persians lay north and south; the Megarians and +Phœnicians placed their heads to the east; the Athenians, +some think, towards the west, which Christians +still retain. And Beda will have it to be the posture +of our Saviour. That he was crucified with his face +toward the west, we will not contend with tradition and +probable account; but we applaud not the hand of the +painter, in exalting his cross so high above those on +either side: since hereof we find no authentic account +in history, and even the crosses found by Helena, pretend +no such distinction from longitude or dimension.</p> + +<p>To be knav’d out of our graves, to have our skulls +made drinking-bowls, and our bones turned into pipes, +to delight and sport our enemies, are tragical abominations +escaped in burning burials.</p> + +<p>Urnal interments and burnt relicks lie not in fear of +worms, or to be an heritage for serpents. In carnal +sepulture, corruptions seem peculiar unto parts; and +some speak of snakes out of the spinal marrow. But +while we suppose common worms in graves, ’tis not +easy to find any there; few in churchyards above a foot +deep, fewer or none in churches though in fresh-decayed +bodies. Teeth, bones, and hair, give the most lasting +defiance to corruption. In an hydropical body, ten +years buried in the churchyard, we met with a fat concretion, +where the nitre of the earth, and the salt and +lixivious liquor of the body, had coagulated large lumps +of fat into the consistence of the hardest Castile soap, +whereof part remaineth with us.<a name="FNanchor_106" id="FNanchor_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a> After a battle with +the Persians, the Roman corpses decayed in few days, +while the Persian bodies remained dry and uncorrupted. +Bodies in the same ground do not uniformly dissolve, nor +bones equally moulder; whereof in the opprobrious +disease, we expect no long duration. The body of the +Marquis of Dorset<a name="FNanchor_LIX._59" id="FNanchor_LIX._59"></a><a href="#Footnote_LIX._59" class="fnanchor">[LIX.]</a> seemed sound and handsomely cereclothed, +that after seventy-eight years was found uncorrupted. +Common tombs preserve not beyond powder: +a firmer consistence and compage of parts might be expected +from arefaction, deep burial, or charcoal. The +greatest antiquities of mortal bodies may remain in +putrefied bones, whereof, though we take not in the +pillar of Lot’s wife, or metamorphosis of Ortelius, some +may be older than pyramids, in the putrefied relicks of +the general inundation. When Alexander opened the +tomb of Cyrus, the remaining bones discovered his proportion, +whereof urnal fragments afford but a bad +conjecture, and have this disadvantage of grave interments, +that they leave us ignorant of most personal discoveries. +For since bones afford not only rectitude and +stability but figure unto the body, it is no impossible +physiognomy to conjecture at fleshy appendencies, +and after what shape the muscles and carnous parts +might hang in their full consistencies. A full-spread +<i>cariola</i> shows a well-shaped horse behind; handsome +formed skulls give some analogy of fleshy resemblance. +A critical view of bones makes a good distinction of +sexes. Even colour is not beyond conjecture, since it +is hard to be deceived in the distinction of the Negroes’ +skulls.<a name="FNanchor_107" id="FNanchor_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a> Dante’s<a name="FNanchor_LX._60" id="FNanchor_LX._60"></a><a href="#Footnote_LX._60" class="fnanchor">[LX.]</a> characters are to be found in skulls as +well as faces. Hercules is not only known by his foot. +Other parts make out their comproportions and inferences +upon whole or parts. And since the dimensions +of the head measure the whole body, and the figure +thereof gives conjecture of the principal faculties: +physiognomy outlives ourselves, and ends not in our +graves.</p> + +<p>Severe contemplators, observing these lasting relicks, +may think them good monuments of persons past, little +advantage to future beings; and, considering that power +which subdueth all things unto itself, that can resume +the scattered atoms, or identify out of anything, conceive +it superfluous to expect a resurrection out of relicks: +but the soul subsisting, other matter, clothed with due +accidents, may salve the individuality. Yet the saints, +we observe, arose from graves and monuments about +the holy city. Some think the ancient patriarchs so +earnestly desired to lay their bones in Canaan, as hoping +to make a part of that resurrection; and, though thirty +miles from Mount Calvary, at least to lie in that region +which should produce the first-fruits of the dead. And +if, according to learned conjecture, the bodies of men +shall rise where their greatest relicks remain, many are +not like to err in the topography of their resurrection, +though their bones or bodies be after translated by +angels into the field of Ezekiel’s vision, or as some will +order it, into the valley of judgment, or Jehosaphat.</p> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h3 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IV.</h3> + +</div> + +<p><span class="smcap">Christians</span> have handsomely glossed the deformity +of death by careful consideration of the body, and civil +rites which take off brutal terminations: and though +they conceived all reparable by a resurrection, cast not +off all care of interment. And since the ashes of sacrifices +burnt upon the altar of God were carefully carried out +by the priests, and deposed in a clean field; since they +acknowledged their bodies to be the lodging of Christ, +and temples of the Holy Ghost, they devolved not all +upon the sufficiency of soul-existence; and therefore +with long services and full solemnities, concluded their +last exequies, wherein to all distinctions the Greek +devotion seems most pathetically ceremonious.</p> + +<p>Christian invention hath chiefly driven at rites, which +speak hopes of another life, and hints of a resurrection. +And if the ancient Gentiles held not the immortality of +their better part, and some subsistence after death, in +several rites, customs, actions, and expressions, they +contradicted their own opinions: wherein Democritus +went high, even to the thought of a resurrection, as +scoffingly recorded by Pliny.<a name="FNanchor_LXI._61" id="FNanchor_LXI._61"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXI._61" class="fnanchor">[LXI.]</a> What can be more +express than the expression of Phocylides?<a name="FNanchor_LXII._62" id="FNanchor_LXII._62"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXII._62" class="fnanchor">[LXII.]</a> Or who +would expect from Lucretius<a name="FNanchor_LXIII._63" id="FNanchor_LXIII._63"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXIII._63" class="fnanchor">[LXIII.]</a> a sentence of Ecclesiastes? +Before Plato could speak, the soul had wings in Homer, +which fell not, but flew out of the body into the mansions +of the dead; who also observed that handsome +distinction of Demas and Soma, for the body conjoined +to the soul, and body separated from it. Lucian spoke +much truth in jest, when he said that part of Hercules +which proceeded from Alcmena perished, that from +Jupiter remained immortal. Thus Socrates was content +that his friends should bury his body, so they +would not think they buried Socrates; and, regarding +only his immortal part, was indifferent to be burnt or +buried. From such considerations, Diogenes might +contemn sepulture, and, being satisfied that the soul +could not perish, grow careless of corporal interment. +The Stoicks, who thought the souls of wise men had +their habitation about the moon, might make slight +account of subterraneous deposition; whereas the +Pythagoreans and transcorporating philosophers, who +were to be often buried, held great care of their interment. +And the Platonicks rejected not a due care of +the grave, though they put their ashes to unreasonable +expectations, in their tedious term of return and long +set revolution.</p> + +<p>Men have lost their reason in nothing so much as +their religion, wherein stones and clouts make martyrs; +and, since the religion of one seems madness unto +another, to afford an account or rational of old rites +requires no rigid reader. That they kindled the pyre +aversely, or turning their face from it, was an handsome +symbol of unwilling ministration. That they washed +their bones with wine and milk; that the mother +wrapped them in linen, and dried them in her bosom, +the first fostering part and place of their nourishment; +that they opened their eyes toward heaven before they +kindled the fire, as the place of their hopes or original, +were no improper ceremonies. Their last valediction,<a name="FNanchor_LXIV._64" id="FNanchor_LXIV._64"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXIV._64" class="fnanchor">[LXIV.]</a> +thrice uttered by the attendants, was also very solemn, +and somewhat answered by Christians, who thought it +too little, if they threw not the earth thrice upon the +interred body. That, in strewing their tombs, the +Romans affected the rose; the Greeks amaranthus and +myrtle: that the funeral pyre consisted of sweet fuel, +cypress, fir, larix, yew, and trees perpetually verdant, +lay silent expressions of their surviving hopes. Wherein +Christians, who deck their coffins with bays, have found +a more elegant emblem; for that it, seeming dead, will +restore itself from the root, and its dry and exsuccous +leaves resume their verdure again; which, if we mistake +not, we have also observed in furze. Whether the +planting of yew in churchyards hold not its original +from ancient funeral rites, or as an emblem of resurrection, +from its perpetual verdure, may also admit +conjecture.</p> + +<p>They made use of musick to excite or quiet the +affections of their friends, according to different harmonies. +But the secret and symbolical hint was the +harmonical nature of the soul; which, delivered from +the body, went again to enjoy the primitive harmony +of heaven, from whence it first descended; which, +according to its progress traced by antiquity, came +down by Cancer, and ascended by Capricornus.</p> + +<p>They burnt not children before their teeth appeared, +as apprehending their bodies too tender a morsel for +fire, and that their gristly bones would scarce leave +separable relicks after the pyral combustion. That they +kindled not fire in their houses for some days after was +a strict memorial of the late afflicting fire. And mourning +without hope, they had an happy fraud against +excessive lamentation, by a common opinion that deep +sorrows disturb their ghosts.<a name="FNanchor_LXV._65" id="FNanchor_LXV._65"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXV._65" class="fnanchor">[LXV.]</a></p> + +<p>That they buried their dead on their backs, or in a +supine position, seems agreeable unto profound sleep, +and common posture of dying; contrary to the most +natural way of birth; nor unlike our pendulous +posture, in the doubtful state of the womb. Diogenes +was singular, who preferred a prone situation in +the grave; and some Christians<a name="FNanchor_LXVI._66" id="FNanchor_LXVI._66"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXVI._66" class="fnanchor">[LXVI.]</a> like neither, who +decline the figure of rest, and make choice of an +erect posture.</p> + +<p>That they carried them out of the world with their +feet forward, not inconsonant unto reason, as contrary +unto the native posture of man, and his production first +into it; and also agreeable unto their opinions, while +they bid adieu unto the world, not to look again upon +it; whereas Mahometans who think to return to a +delightful life again, are carried forth with their heads +forward, and looking toward their houses.</p> + +<p>They closed their eyes, as parts which first die, or +first discover the sad effects of death. But their iterated +clamations to excitate their dying or dead friends, or +revoke them unto life again, was a vanity of affection; +as not presumably ignorant of the critical tests of death, +by apposition of feathers, glasses, and reflection of +figures, which dead eyes represent not: which, however +not strictly verifiable in fresh and warm <i>cadavers</i>, +could hardly elude the test, in corpses of four or five +days.</p> + +<p>That they sucked in the last breath of their expiring +friends, was surely a practice of no medical institution, +but a loose opinion that the soul passed out that way, +and a fondness of affection, from some Pythagorical +foundation, that the spirit of one body passed into +another, which they wished might be their own.</p> + +<p>That they poured oil upon the pyre, was a tolerable +practice, while the intention rested in facilitating the +ascension. But to place good omens in the quick and +speedy burning, to sacrifice unto the winds for a +despatch in this office, was a low form of superstition.</p> + +<p>The archimime, or jester, attending the funeral train, +and imitating the speeches, gesture, and manners of the +deceased, was too light for such solemnities, contradicting +their funeral orations and doleful rites of the +grave.</p> + +<p>That they buried a piece of money with them as a fee +of the Elysian ferryman, was a practice full of folly. +But the ancient custom of placing coins in considerable +urns, and the present practice of burying medals in the +noble foundations of Europe, are laudable ways of historical +discoveries, in actions, persons, chronologies; +and posterity will applaud them.</p> + +<p>We examine not the old laws of sepulture, exempting +certain persons from burial or burning. But hereby we +apprehend that these were not the bones of persons +planet-struck or burnt with fire from heaven; no relicks +of traitors to their country, self-killers, or sacrilegious +malefactors; persons in old apprehension unworthy of the +earth; condemned unto the Tartarus of hell, and bottomless +pit of Pluto, from whence there was no redemption.</p> + +<p>Nor were only many customs questionable in order +to their obsequies, but also sundry practices, fictions, +and conceptions, discordant or obscure, of their state +and future beings. Whether unto eight or ten bodies +of men to add one of a woman, as being more inflammable +and unctuously constituted for the better +pyral combustion, were any rational practice; or +whether the complaint of Periander’s wife be tolerable, +that wanting her funeral burning, she suffered +intolerable cold in hell, according to the constitution +of the infernal house of Pluto, wherein cold makes a +great part of their tortures; it cannot pass without +some question.</p> + +<p>Why the female ghosts appear unto Ulysses, before +the heroes and masculine spirits,—why the Psyche or +soul of Tiresias is of the masculine gender, who, being +blind on earth, sees more than all the rest in hell; why +the funeral suppers consisted of eggs, beans, smallage, +and lettuce, since the dead are made to eat asphodels +about the Elysian meadows:—why, since there is no +sacrifice acceptable, nor any propitiation for the covenant +of the grave, men set up the deity of Morta, and +fruitlessly adored divinities without ears, it cannot +escape some doubt.</p> + +<p>The dead seem all alive in the human Hades of +Homer, yet cannot well speak, prophecy, or know the +living, except they drink blood, wherein is the life of +man. And therefore the souls of Penelope’s paramours, +conducted by Mercury, chirped like bats, and those +which followed Hercules, made a noise but like a flock +of birds.</p> + +<p>The departed spirits know things past and to come; +yet are ignorant of things present. Agamemnon foretells +what should happen unto Ulysses; yet ignorantly +inquires what is become of his own son. The ghosts +are afraid of swords in Homer; yet Sibylla tells Æneas +in Virgil, the thin habit of spirits was beyond the force +of weapons. The spirits put off their malice with their +bodies, and Cæsar and Pompey accord in Latin hell; yet +Ajax, in Homer, endures not a conference with Ulysses; +and Deiphobus appears all mangled in Virgil’s ghosts, +yet we meet with perfect shadows among the wounded +ghosts of Homer.</p> + +<p>Since Charon in Lucian applauds his condition among +the dead, whether it be handsomely said of Achilles, +that living contemner of death, that he had rather be a +ploughman’s servant, than emperor of the dead? How +Hercules his soul is in hell, and yet in heaven; and +Julius his soul in a star, yet seen by Æneas in hell?—except +the ghosts were but images and shadows of the +soul, received in higher mansions, according to the +ancient division of body, soul, and image, or <i>simulachrum</i> +of them both. The particulars of future beings must +needs be dark unto ancient theories, which Christian +philosophy yet determines but in a cloud of opinions. +A dialogue between two infants in the womb concerning +the state of this world, might handsomely illustrate +our ignorance of the next, whereof methinks we +yet discourse in Pluto’s den, and are but embryo +philosophers.</p> + +<p>Pythagoras escapes in the fabulous hell of Dante,<a name="FNanchor_LXVII._67" id="FNanchor_LXVII._67"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXVII._67" class="fnanchor">[LXVII.]</a> +among that swarm of philosophers, wherein, whilst we +meet with Plato and Socrates, Cato is to be found in no +lower place than purgatory. Among all the set, +Epicurus is most considerable, whom men make honest +without an Elysium, who contemned life without encouragement +of immortality, and making nothing after +death, yet made nothing of the king of terrors.</p> + +<p>Were the happiness of the next world as closely apprehended +as the felicities of this, it were a martyrdom to +live; and unto such as consider none hereafter, it must be +more than death to die, which makes us amazed at those +audacities that durst be nothing and return into their +chaos again. Certainly such spirits as could contemn +death, when they expected no better being after, would +have scorned to live, had they known any. And therefore +we applaud not the judgment of Machiavel, that +Christianity makes men cowards, or that with the confidence +of but half-dying, the despised virtues of +patience and humility have abased the spirits of men, +which Pagan principles exalted; but rather regulated +the wildness of audacities in the attempts, grounds, and +eternal sequels of death; wherein men of the boldest +spirits are often prodigiously temerarious. Nor can we +extenuate the valour of ancient martyrs, who contemned +death in the uncomfortable scene of their lives, and in +their decrepit martyrdoms did probably lose not many +months of their days, or parted with life when it was +scarce worth the living. For (beside that long time +past holds no consideration unto a slender time to come) +they had no small disadvantage from the constitution +of old age, which naturally makes men fearful, and +complexionally superannuated from the bold and +courageous thoughts of youth and fervent years. But +the contempt of death from corporal animosity, promoteth +not our felicity. They may sit in the orchestra, +and noblest seats of heaven, who have held up +shaking hands in the fire, and humanly contended +for glory.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile Epicurus lies deep in Dante’s hell, wherein +we meet with tombs enclosing souls which denied +their immortalities. But whether the virtuous heathen, +who lived better than he spake, or erring in the principles +of himself, yet lived above philosophers of more +specious maxims, lie so deep as he is placed, at least so +low as not to rise against Christians, who believing or +knowing that truth, have lastingly denied it in their +practice and conversation—were a query too sad to +insist on.</p> + +<p>But all or most apprehensions rested in opinions of +some future being, which, ignorantly or coldly believed, +begat those perverted conceptions, ceremonies, sayings, +which Christians pity or laugh at. Happy are they +which live not in that disadvantage of time, when men +could say little for futurity, but from reason: whereby +the noblest minds fell often upon doubtful deaths, and +melancholy dissolutions. With these hopes, Socrates +warmed his doubtful spirits against that cold potion; +and Cato, before he durst give the fatal stroke, spent part +of the night in reading the Immortality of Plato, thereby +confirming his wavering hand unto the animosity of +that attempt.</p> + +<p>It is the heaviest stone that melancholy can throw at +a man, to tell him he is at the end of his nature; or +that there is no further state to come, unto which +this seems progressional, and otherwise made in vain. +Without this accomplishment, the natural expectation +and desire of such a state, were but a fallacy in nature; +unsatisfied considerators would quarrel the justice of +their constitutions, and rest content that Adam had +fallen lower; whereby, by knowing no other original, +and deeper ignorance of themselves, they might have +enjoyed the happiness of inferior creatures, who in +tranquillity possess their constitutions, as having not +the apprehension to deplore their own natures, and, +being framed below the circumference of these hopes, +or cognition of better being, the wisdom of God hath +necessitated their contentment: but the superior ingredient +and obscured part of ourselves, whereto all +present felicities afford no resting contentment, will be +able at last to tell us, we are more than our present +selves, and evacuate such hopes in the fruition of their +own accomplishments.</p> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h3 class="nobreak">CHAPTER V.</h3> + +</div> + +<p>Now since these dead bones have already outlasted +the living ones of Methuselah, and in a yard underground, +and thin walls of clay, outworn all the strong +and specious buildings above it; and quietly rested +under the drums and tramplings of three conquests: +what prince can promise such diuturnity unto his relicks, +or might not gladly say,</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse"><i>Sic ego componi versus in ossa velim?</i><a name="FNanchor_LXVIII._68" id="FNanchor_LXVIII._68"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXVIII._68" class="fnanchor">[LXVIII.]</a></div> +</div></div></div> + +<p>Time, which antiquates antiquities, and hath an art to +make dust of all things, hath yet spared these minor +monuments.</p> + +<p>In vain we hope to be known by open and visible +conservatories, when to be unknown was the means of +their continuation, and obscurity their protection. If +they died by violent hands, and were thrust into their +urns, these bones become considerable, and some old +philosophers would honour them, whose souls they +conceived most pure, which were thus snatched from +their bodies, and to retain a stronger propension unto +them; whereas they weariedly left a languishing corpse +and with faint desires of re-union. If they fell by +long and aged decay, yet wrapt up in the bundle of +time, they fall into indistinction, and make but one +blot with infants. If we begin to die when we live, +and long life be but a prolongation of death, our life is +a sad composition; we live with death, and die not in +a moment. How many pulses made up the life of +Methuselah, were work for Archimedes: common +counters sum up the life of Moses his man. Our days +become considerable, like petty sums, by minute accumulations: +where numerous fractions make up but +small round numbers; and our days of a span long, +make not one little finger.<a name="FNanchor_LXIX._69" id="FNanchor_LXIX._69"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXIX._69" class="fnanchor">[LXIX.]</a></p> + +<p>If the nearness of our last necessity brought a nearer +conformity into it, there were a happiness in hoary +hairs, and no calamity in half-senses. But the long +habit of living indisposeth us for dying; when avarice +makes us the sport of death, when even David grew +politickly cruel, and Solomon could hardly be said to +be the wisest of men. But many are too early old, and +before the date of age. Adversity stretcheth our days, +misery makes Alcmena’s nights,<a name="FNanchor_LXX._70" id="FNanchor_LXX._70"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXX._70" class="fnanchor">[LXX.]</a> and time hath no +wings unto it. But the most tedious being is that which +can unwish itself, content to be nothing, or never to +have been, which was beyond the malcontent of Job, +who cursed not the day of his life, but his nativity; content +to have so far been, as to have a title to future being, +although he had lived here but in an hidden state of +life, and as it were an abortion.</p> + +<p>What song the Syrens sang, or what name Achilles +assumed when he hid himself among women, though +puzzling questions,<a name="FNanchor_LXXI._71" id="FNanchor_LXXI._71"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXI._71" class="fnanchor">[LXXI.]</a> are not beyond all conjecture. What +time the persons of these ossuaries entered the famous +nations of the dead, and slept with princes and counsellors, +might admit a wide solution. But who were +the proprietaries of these bones, or what bodies these +ashes made up, were a question above antiquarism; not +to be resolved by man, nor easily perhaps by spirits, +except we consult the provincial guardians, or tutelary +observators. Had they made as good provision for +their names, as they have done for their relicks, they +had not so grossly erred in the art of perpetuation. But +to subsist in bones, and be but pyramidally extant, is a +fallacy in duration. Vain ashes which in the oblivion +of names, persons, times, and sexes, have found unto +themselves a fruitless continuation, and only arise unto +late posterity, as emblems of mortal vanities, antidotes +against pride, vain-glory, and madding vices. Pagan +vain-glories which thought the world might last for +ever, had encouragement for ambition; and, finding no +<i>atropos</i> unto the immortality of their names, were never +dampt with the necessity of oblivion. Even old ambitions +had the advantage of ours, in the attempts of +their vain-glories, who acting early, and before the +probable meridian of time, have by this time found +great accomplishment of their designs, whereby the +ancient heroes have already outlasted their monuments +and mechanical preservations. But in this latter scene +of time, we cannot expect such mummies unto our +memories, when ambition may fear the prophecy of +Elias,<a name="FNanchor_LXXII._72" id="FNanchor_LXXII._72"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXII._72" class="fnanchor">[LXXII.]</a> and Charles the Fifth can never hope to live +within two Methuselahs of Hector.<a name="FNanchor_LXXIII._73" id="FNanchor_LXXIII._73"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXIII._73" class="fnanchor">[LXXIII.]</a></p> + +<p>And therefore, restless inquietude for the diuturnity +of our memories unto the present considerations seems +a vanity almost out of date, and superannuated piece of +folly. We cannot hope to live so long in our names, +as some have done in their persons. One face of Janus +holds no proportion unto the other. ’Tis too late to be +ambitious. The great mutations of the world are acted, +or time may be too short for our designs. To extend +our memories by monuments, whose death we daily +pray for, and whose duration we cannot hope, without +injury to our expectations in the advent of the last day, +were a contradiction to our beliefs. We whose generations +are ordained in this setting part of time, are providentially +taken off from such imaginations; and, +being necessitated to eye the remaining particle of +futurity, are naturally constituted unto thoughts of the +next world, and cannot excusably decline the consideration +of that duration, which maketh pyramids pillars +of snow, and all that’s past a moment.</p> + +<p>Circles and right lines limit and close all bodies, and +the mortal right-lined circle<a name="FNanchor_LXXIV._74" id="FNanchor_LXXIV._74"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXIV._74" class="fnanchor">[LXXIV.]</a> must conclude and shut +up all. There is no antidote against the opium of time, +which temporally considereth all things: our fathers +find their graves in our short memories, and sadly tell +us how we may be buried in our survivors. Gravestones +tell truth scarce forty years. Generations pass +while some trees stand, and old families last not three +oaks. To be read by bare inscriptions like many in +Gruter, to hope for eternity by enigmatical epithets or +first letters of our names, to be studied by antiquaries, +who we were, and have new names given us like many +of the mummies, are cold consolations unto the students +of perpetuity, even by everlasting languages.</p> + +<p>To be content that times to come should only know +there was such a man, not caring whether they knew +more of him, was a frigid ambition in Cardan;<a name="FNanchor_LXXV._75" id="FNanchor_LXXV._75"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXV._75" class="fnanchor">[LXXV.]</a> disparaging +his horoscopal inclination and judgment of himself. +Who cares to subsist like Hippocrates’s patients, or +Achilles’s horses in Homer, under naked nominations, +without deserts and noble acts, which are the balsam +of our memories, the <i>entelechia</i> and soul of our subsistences? +To be nameless in worthy deeds, exceeds +an infamous history. The Canaanitish woman lives +more happily without a name, than Herodias with +one. And who had not rather have been the good +thief, than Pilate?</p> + +<p>But the iniquity of oblivion blindly scattereth her +poppy, and deals with the memory of men without +distinction to merit of perpetuity. Who can but +pity the founder of the pyramids? Herostratus lives +that burnt the temple of Diana, he is almost lost that +built it. Time hath spared the epitaph of Adrian’s +horse, confounded that of himself. In vain we compute +our felicities by the advantage of our good +names, since bad have equal durations, and Thersites +is like to live as long as Agamemnon without the +favour of the everlasting register. Who knows +whether the best of men be known, or whether there +be not more remarkable persons forgot, than any +that stand remembered in the known account of time? +The first man had been as unknown as the last, +and Methuselah’s long life had been his only +chronicle.</p> + +<p>Oblivion is not to be hired. The greater part must +be content to be as though they had not been, to be +found in the register of God, not in the record of man. +Twenty-seven names make up the first story and the +recorded names ever since contain not one living century. +The number of the dead long exceedeth all that +shall live. The night of time far surpasseth the day, +and who knows when was the equinox? Every hour +adds unto that current arithmetick, which scarce stands +one moment. And since death must be the <i>Lucina</i> +of life, and even Pagans<a name="FNanchor_108" id="FNanchor_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a> could doubt, whether +thus to live were to die; since our longest sun sets +at right descensions, and makes but winter arches, +and therefore it cannot be long before we lie down +in darkness, and have our light in ashes; since the +brother of death daily haunts us with dying mementoes, +and time that grows old in itself, bids us hope +no long duration;—diuturnity is a dream and folly +of expectation.</p> + +<p>Darkness and light divide the course of time, and +oblivion shares with memory a great part even of our +living beings; we slightly remember our felicities, and +the smartest strokes of affliction leave but short smart +upon us. Sense endureth no extremities, and sorrows +destroy us or themselves. To weep into stones are +fables. Afflictions induce callosities; miseries are slippery, +or fall like snow upon us, which notwithstanding +is no unhappy stupidity. To be ignorant of evils to +come, and forgetful of evils past, is a merciful provision +in nature, whereby we digest the mixture of our few +and evil days, and, our delivered senses not relapsing +into cutting remembrances, our sorrows are not kept +raw by the edge of repetitions. A great part of antiquity +contented their hopes of subsistency with a transmigration +of their souls,—a good way to continue their memories, +while having the advantage of plural successions, +they could not but act something remarkable in such +variety of beings, and enjoying the fame of their passed +selves, make accumulation of glory unto their last durations. +Others, rather than be lost in the uncomfortable +night of nothing, were content to recede into the common +being, and make one particle of the public soul of all +things, which was no more than to return into their unknown +and divine original again. Egyptian ingenuity +was more unsatisfied, contriving their bodies in sweet +consistences, to attend the return of their souls. But +all is vanity, feeding the wind, and folly. Egyptian +mummies, which Cambyses or time hath spared, +avarice now consumeth. Mummy is become merchandise, +Mizraim, cures wounds, and Pharaoh is sold +for balsams.</p> + +<p>In vain do individuals hope for immortality, or any +patent from oblivion, in preservations below the moon; +men have been deceived even in their flatteries, above +the sun, and studied conceits to perpetuate their names +in heaven. The various cosmography of that part hath +already varied the names of contrived constellations; +Nimrod is lost in Orion, and Osyris in the Dog-star. +While we look for incorruption in the heavens, we find +that they are but like the earth;—durable in their main +bodies, alterable in their parts; whereof, beside comets +and new stars, perspectives begin to tell tales, and the +spots that wander about the sun, with Phaeton’s favour, +would make clear conviction.</p> + +<p>There is nothing strictly immortal, but immortality. +Whatever hath no beginning, may be confident of no +end;—all others have a dependent being and within +the reach of destruction;—which is the peculiar of +that necessary essence that cannot destroy itself;—and +the highest strain of omnipotency, to be so powerfully +constituted as not to suffer even from the power of +itself. But the sufficiency of Christian immortality +frustrates all earthly glory, and the quality of either +state after death, makes a folly of posthumous memory. +God who can only destroy our souls, and hath assured +our resurrection, either of our bodies or names hath +directly promised no duration. Wherein there is so +much of chance, that the boldest expectants have found +unhappy frustration; and to hold long subsistence, +seems but a scape in oblivion. But man is a noble +animal, splendid in ashes, and pompous in the grave, +solemnizing nativities and deaths with equal lustre, +nor omitting ceremonies of bravery in the infamy of +his nature.</p> + +<p>Life is a pure flame, and we live by an invisible sun +within us. A small fire sufficeth for life, great flames +seemed too little after death, while men vainly affected +precious pyres, and to burn like Sardanapalus; but +the wisdom of funeral laws found the folly of prodigal +blazes and reduced undoing fires unto the rule of sober +obsequies, wherein few could be so mean as not to provide +wood, pitch, a mourner, and an urn.</p> + +<p>Five languages<a name="FNanchor_109" id="FNanchor_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a> secured not the epitaph of Gordianus. +The man of God lives longer without a tomb than any +by one, invisibly interred by angels, and adjudged to +obscurity, though not without some marks directing +human discovery. Enoch and Elias, without either +tomb or burial, in an anomalous state of being, are +the great examples of perpetuity, in their long and +living memory, in strict account being still on this +side death, and having a late part yet to act upon this +stage of earth. If in the decretory term of the world +we shall not all die but be changed, according to received +translation, the last day will make but few graves; +at least quick resurrections will anticipate lasting +sepultures. Some graves will be opened before they +be quite closed, and Lazarus be no wonder. When many +that feared to die, shall groan that they can die but once, +the dismal state is the second and living death, when +life puts despair on the damned; when men shall wish +the coverings of mountains, not of monuments, and +annihilations shall be courted.</p> + +<p>While some have studied monuments, others have +studiously declined them, and some have been so vainly +boisterous, that they durst not acknowledge their graves; +wherein Alaricus seems most subtle, who had a river +turned to hide his bones at the bottom. Even Sylla, +that thought himself safe in his urn, could not prevent +revenging tongues, and stones thrown at his monument. +Happy are they whom privacy makes innocent, who +deal so with men in this world, that they are not +afraid to meet them in the next; who, when they die, +make no commotion among the dead, and are not +touched with that poetical taunt of Isaiah.<a name="FNanchor_LXXVI._76" id="FNanchor_LXXVI._76"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXVI._76" class="fnanchor">[LXXVI.]</a></p> + +<p>Pyramids, arches, obelisks, were but the irregularities +of vain-glory, and wild enormities of ancient magnanimity. +But the most magnanimous resolution rests in +the Christian religion, which trampleth upon pride and +sits on the neck of ambition, humbly pursuing that +infallible perpetuity, unto which all others must +diminish their diameters, and be poorly seen in angles +of contingency.<a name="FNanchor_LXXVII._77" id="FNanchor_LXXVII._77"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXVII._77" class="fnanchor">[LXXVII.]</a></p> + +<p>Pious spirits who passed their days in raptures of +futurity, made little more of this world, than the world +that was before it, while they lay obscure in the chaos +of pre-ordination, and night of their fore-beings. And +if any have been so happy as truly to understand +Christian annihilation, ecstasies, exolution, liquefaction, +transformation, the kiss of the spouse, gustation of +God, and ingression into the divine shadow, they have +already had an handsome anticipation of heaven; the +glory of the world is surely over, and the earth in ashes +unto them.</p> + +<p>To subsist in lasting monuments, to live in their productions, +to exist in their names and predicament of +chimeras, was large satisfaction unto old expectations, +and made one part of their Elysiums. But all this +is nothing in the metaphysicks of true belief. To live +indeed, is to be again ourselves, which being not only an +hope, but an evidence in noble believers, ’tis all one to +lie in St Innocent’s<a name="FNanchor_LXXVIII._78" id="FNanchor_LXXVIII._78"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXVIII._78" class="fnanchor">[LXXVIII.]</a> church-yard as in the sands of +Egypt. Ready to be anything, in the ecstasy of +being ever, and as content with six foot as the <i>moles</i> +of Adrianus.<a name="FNanchor_LXXIX._79" id="FNanchor_LXXIX._79"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXIX._79" class="fnanchor">[LXXIX.]</a></p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">——“<i>Tabésne cadavera solvat,</i></div> + <div class="verse"><i>An rogus, haud refert.</i>”—<span class="smcap">Lucan.</span> viii. 809.</div> +</div></div></div> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 175px;"> +<img src="images/zill_182.png" width="175" height="150" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> +<a id="LETTER_TO_A_FRIEND"></a> +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 250px;"> +<img src="images/zill_183_1.png" width="250" height="51" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<h2 class="nobreak">A LETTER TO A FRIEND,<br /> + +<span class="small">UPON OCCASION OF THE DEATH OF HIS INTIMATE FRIEND.</span></h2> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 125px;"> +<img src="images/zill_183_2.png" width="125" height="29" alt="decoration" /> +</div> +</div> + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_185_1.png" width="450" height="102" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<p class="large p2 center">LETTER TO A FRIEND.</p> + +</div> + +<div> + <img class="drop-cap" src="images/zill_185_2.png" width="70" height="69" alt=""/> +</div> + +<p class="drop-cap"><span class="upper-case">GIVE</span> me leave to wonder that news of this nature +should have such heavy wings that you should +hear so little concerning your dearest friend, +and that I must make that unwilling repetition to tell +you “<i>ad portam rigidos calces extendit</i>,” that he is dead +and buried, and by this time no puny among the mighty +nations of the dead; for though he left this world not +very many days past, yet every hour you know largely +addeth unto that dark society; and considering the +incessant mortality of mankind, you cannot conceive +there dieth in the whole earth so few as a thousand an +hour.</p> + +<p>Although at this distance you had no early account +or particular of his death, yet your affection may cease +to wonder that you had not some secret sense or intimation +thereof by dreams, thoughtful whisperings, mercurisms, +airy nuncios or sympathetical insinuations, +which many seem to have had at the death of their +dearest friends: for since we find in that famous story, +that spirits themselves were fain to tell their fellows +at a distance that the great Antonio was dead, we have +a sufficient excuse for our ignorance in such particulars, +and must rest content with the common road, and Appian +way of knowledge by information. Though the +uncertainty of the end of this world hath confounded +all human predictions; yet they who shall live to see +the sun and moon darkened, and the stars to fall from +heaven, will hardly be deceived in the advent of the +last day; and therefore strange it is, that the common +fallacy of consumptive persons who feel not themselves +dying, and therefore still hope to live, should also reach +their friends in perfect health and judgment;—that you +should be so little acquainted with Plautus’s sick complexion, +or that almost an Hippocratical face should +not alarum you to higher fears, or rather despair, of +his continuation in such an emaciated state, wherein +medical predictions fail not, as sometimes in acute diseases, +and wherein ’tis as dangerous to be sentenced by +a physician as a judge.</p> + +<p>Upon my first visit I was bold to tell them who had +not let fall all hopes of his recovery, that in my sad +opinion he was not like to behold a grasshopper,<a name="FNanchor_110" id="FNanchor_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a> much +less to pluck another fig; and in no long time after +seemed to discover that odd mortal symptom in him +not mentioned by Hippocrates, that is, to lose his own +face, and look like some of his near relations; for he +maintained not his proper countenance, but looked like +his uncle, the lines of whose face lay deep and invisible +in his healthful visage before: for as from our beginning +we run through variety of looks, before we come +to consistent and settled faces; so before our end, by +sick and languishing alterations, we put on new visages: +and in our retreat to earth, may fall upon such looks +which from community of seminal originals were before +latent in us.</p> + +<p>He was fruitlessly put in hope of advantage by change +of air, and imbibing the pure aerial nitre of these parts; +and therefore, being so far spent, he quickly found Sardinia +in Tivoli,<a name="FNanchor_LXXX._80" id="FNanchor_LXXX._80"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXX._80" class="fnanchor">[LXXX.]</a> and the most healthful air of little +effect, where death had set her broad arrow;<a name="FNanchor_LXXXI._81" id="FNanchor_LXXXI._81"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXI._81" class="fnanchor">[LXXXI.]</a> for he +lived not unto the middle of May, and confirmed the +observation of Hippocrates of that mortal time of the +year when the leaves of the fig-tree resemble a daw’s +claw. He is happily seated who lives in places whose +air, earth, and water, promote not the infirmities of his +weaker parts, or is early removed into regions that +correct them. He that is tabidly<a name="FNanchor_111" id="FNanchor_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a> inclined, were unwise +to pass his days in Portugal: cholical persons will find +little comfort in Austria or Vienna: he that is weak-legged +must not be in love with Rome, nor an infirm +head with Venice or Paris. Death hath not only particular +stars in heaven, but malevolent places on earth, +which single out our infirmities, and strike at our +weaker parts; in which concern, passager and migrant +birds have the great advantages, who are naturally +constituted for distant habitations, whom no seas nor +places limit, but in their appointed seasons will visit +us from Greenland and Mount Atlas, and, as some think, +even from the Antipodes.<a name="FNanchor_LXXXII._82" id="FNanchor_LXXXII._82"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXII._82" class="fnanchor">[LXXXII.]</a></p> + +<p>Though we could not have his life, yet we missed not +our desires in his soft departure, which was scarce an +expiration; and his end not unlike his beginning, when +the salient point scarce affords a sensible motion, and +his departure so like unto sleep, that he scarce needed +the civil ceremony of closing his eyes; contrary unto the +common way, wherein death draws up, sleep lets fall +the eyelids. With what strife and pains we came into +the world we know not; but ’tis commonly no easy +matter to get out of it: yet if it could be made out, +that such who have easy nativities have commonly hard +deaths, and contrarily; his departure was so easy, that +we might justly suspect his birth was of another nature, +and that some Juno sat cross-legged at his nativity.</p> + +<p>Besides his soft death, the incurable state of his +disease might somewhat extenuate your sorrow, who +know that monsters but seldom happen, miracles more +rarely in physick.<a name="FNanchor_LXXXIII._83" id="FNanchor_LXXXIII._83"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXIII._83" class="fnanchor">[LXXXIII.]</a> <i>Angelus Victorius</i> gives a serious +account of a consumptive, hectical, phthisical woman, +who was suddenly cured by the intercession of Ignatius. +We read not of any in Scripture who in this case applied +unto our Saviour, though some may be contained in +that large expression, that he went about Galilee healing +all manner of sickness and all manner of diseases.<a name="FNanchor_LXXXIV._84" id="FNanchor_LXXXIV._84"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXIV._84" class="fnanchor">[LXXXIV.]</a> +Amulets, spells, sigils, and incantations, practised in +other diseases, are seldom pretended in this; and we +find no sigil in the Archidoxis of Paracelsus to cure +an extreme consumption or marasmus, which, if other +diseases fail, will put a period unto long livers, and at +last makes dust of all. And therefore the Stoics could +not but think that the fiery principle would wear out +all the rest, and at last make an end of the world, which +notwithstanding without such a lingering period the +Creator may effect at his pleasure: and to make an end +of all things on earth, and our planetical system of the +world, he need but put out the sun.</p> + +<p>I was not so curious to entitle the stars unto any +concern of his death, yet could not but take notice that +he died when the moon was in motion from the meridian; +at which time an old Italian long ago would persuade +me that the greatest part of men died: but herein +I confess I could never satisfy my curiosity; although +from the time of tides in places upon or near the sea, +there may be considerable deductions; and Pliny<a name="FNanchor_LXXXV._85" id="FNanchor_LXXXV._85"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXV._85" class="fnanchor">[LXXXV.]</a> hath +an odd and remarkable passage concerning the death of +men and animals upon the recess or ebb of the sea. +However, certain it is, he died in the dead and deep +part of the night, when Nox might be most apprehensibly +said to be the daughter of Chaos, the mother of +sleep and death, according to old genealogy; and so +went out of this world about that hour when our blessed +Saviour entered it, and about what time many conceive +he will return again unto it. Cardan<a name="FNanchor_112" id="FNanchor_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a> hath a peculiar +and no hard observation from a man’s hand to know +whether he was born in the day or night, which I confess +holdeth in my own. And Scaliger<a name="FNanchor_113" id="FNanchor_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a> to that purpose +hath another from the tip of the ear:<a name="FNanchor_LXXXVI._86" id="FNanchor_LXXXVI._86"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXVI._86" class="fnanchor">[LXXXVI.]</a> most men are +begotten in the night, animals in the day; but whether +more persons have been born in the night or day, were +a curiosity undecidable, though more have perished by +violent deaths in the day; yet in natural dissolutions +both times may hold an indifferency, at least but contingent +inequality. The whole course of time runs out +in the nativity and death of things; which whether +they happen by succession or coincidence, are best computed +by the natural, not artificial day.</p> + + +<p>That Charles the Fifth<a name="FNanchor_114" id="FNanchor_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a> was crowned upon the day +of his nativity, it being in his own power so to order +it, makes no singular animadversion: but that he +should also take King Francis<a name="FNanchor_115" id="FNanchor_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a> prisoner upon that +day, was an unexpected coincidence, which made the +same remarkable. Antipater, who had an anniversary +feast every year upon his birth-day, needed no astrological +revolution to know what day he should die on. +When the fixed stars have made a revolution unto the +points from whence they first set out, some of the +ancients thought the world would have an end; which +was a kind of dying upon the day of its nativity. Now +the disease prevailing and swiftly advancing about the +time of his nativity, some were of opinion that he +would leave the world on the day he entered into it; +but this being a lingering disease, and creeping softly +on, nothing critical was found or expected, and he died +not before fifteen days after. Nothing is more common +with infants than to die on the day of their nativity, to +behold the worldly hours, and but the fractions thereof; +and even to perish before their nativity in the hidden +world of the womb, and before their good angel is conceived +to undertake them. But in persons who outlive +many years, and when there are no less than three +hundred and sixty-five days to determine their lives in +every year; that the first day should make the last, +that the tail of the snake should return into its mouth +precisely at that time, and they should wind up upon +the day of their nativity, is indeed a remarkable +coincidence, which, though astrology hath taken witty +pains to salve, yet hath it been very wary in making +predictions of it.<a name="FNanchor_LXXXVII._87" id="FNanchor_LXXXVII._87"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXVII._87" class="fnanchor">[LXXXVII.]</a></p> + +<p>In this consumptive condition and remarkable extenuation, +he came to be almost half himself, and left a +great part behind him, which he carried not to the +grave. And though that story of Duke John Ernestus +Mansfield<a name="FNanchor_116" id="FNanchor_116"></a><a href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a><a name="FNanchor_LXXXVIII._88" id="FNanchor_LXXXVIII._88"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXVIII._88" class="fnanchor">[LXXXVIII.]</a> be not so easily swallowed, that at his death +his heart was found not to be so big as a nut; yet if +the bones of a good skeleton weigh little more than +twenty pounds, his inwards and flesh remaining could +make no bouffage,<a name="FNanchor_117" id="FNanchor_117"></a><a href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a> but a light bit for the grave. I +never more lively beheld the starved characters of +Dante<a name="FNanchor_LXXXIX._89" id="FNanchor_LXXXIX._89"></a><a href="#Footnote_LXXXIX._89" class="fnanchor">[LXXXIX.]</a> in any living face; an <i>aruspex</i> might have read +a lecture upon him without exenteration, his flesh +being so consumed, that he might, in a manner, have +discerned his bowels without opening of him; so that +to be carried, <i>sexta cervice</i><a name="FNanchor_XC._90" id="FNanchor_XC._90"></a><a href="#Footnote_XC._90" class="fnanchor">[XC.]</a> to the grave, was but a +civil unnecessity; and the complements of the coffin +might outweigh the subject of it.</p> + +<p><i>Omnibonus Ferrarius</i> in mortal dysenteries of children +looks for a spot behind the ear; in consumptive +diseases some eye the complexion of moles; Cardan +eagerly views the nails, some the lines of the hand, the +thenar or muscle of the thumb; some are so curious as +to observe the depth of the throat-pit, how the proportion +varieth of the small of the legs unto the calf, +or the compass of the neck unto the circumference of +the head; but all these, with many more, were so +drowned in a mortal visage, and last face of Hippocrates, +that a weak physiognomist might say at first eye, this +was a face of earth, and that <i>Morta</i><a name="FNanchor_XCI._91" id="FNanchor_XCI._91"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCI._91" class="fnanchor">[XCI.]</a> had set her hard seal +upon his temples, easily perceiving what <i>caricatura</i><a name="FNanchor_XCII._92" id="FNanchor_XCII._92"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCII._92" class="fnanchor">[XCII.]</a> +draughts death makes upon pined faces, and unto what +an unknown degree a man may live backward.</p> + +<p>Though the beard be only made a distinction of sex, +and sign of masculine heat by <i>Ulmus</i>,<a name="FNanchor_XCIII._93" id="FNanchor_XCIII._93"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCIII._93" class="fnanchor">[XCIII.]</a> yet the +precocity and early growth thereof in him, was not +to be liked in reference unto long life. Lewis, +that virtuous but unfortunate king of Hungary, +who lost his life at the battle of Mohacz,<a name="FNanchor_118" id="FNanchor_118"></a><a href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a> was +said to be born without a skin, to have bearded at +fifteen, and to have shown some grey hairs about +twenty; from whence the diviners conjectured that he +would be spoiled of his kingdom, and have but a short +life; but hairs make fallible predictions, and many +temples early grey have outlived the psalmist’s period.<a name="FNanchor_XCIV._94" id="FNanchor_XCIV._94"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCIV._94" class="fnanchor">[XCIV.]</a> +Hairs which have most amused me have not been in the +face or head, but on the back, and not in men but +children, as I long ago observed in that endemial +distemper of children in Languedoc, called the <i>morgellons</i>,<a name="FNanchor_XCV._95" id="FNanchor_XCV._95"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCV._95" class="fnanchor">[XCV.]</a> +wherein they critically break out with harsh +hairs on their backs, which takes off the unquiet symptoms +of the disease, and delivers them from coughs and +convulsions.</p> + +<p>The Egyptian mummies that I have seen, have had +their mouths open, and somewhat gaping, which affordeth +a good opportunity to view and observe their teeth, +wherein ’tis not easy to find any wanting or decayed; +and therefore in Egypt, where one man practised but +one operation, or the diseases but of single parts, it +must needs be a barren profession to confine unto that of +drawing of teeth, and to have been little better than tooth-drawer +unto King Pyrrhus,<a name="FNanchor_XCVI._96" id="FNanchor_XCVI._96"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCVI._96" class="fnanchor">[XCVI.]</a> who had but two in his head.</p> + +<p>How the banyans of India maintain the integrity of +those parts, I find not particularly observed; who notwithstanding +have an advantage of their preservation by +abstaining from all flesh, and employing their teeth in +such food unto which they may seem at first framed, +from their figure and conformation; but sharp and +corroding rheums had so early mouldered these rocks +and hardest parts of his fabric, that a man might well +conceive that his years were never like to double or +twice tell over his teeth.<a name="FNanchor_XCVII._97" id="FNanchor_XCVII._97"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCVII._97" class="fnanchor">[XCVII.]</a> Corruption had dealt more +severely with them than sepulchral fires and smart +flames with those of burnt bodies of old; for in the +burnt fragments of urns which I have inquired into, +although I seem to find few incisors or shearers, yet the +dog teeth and grinders do notably resist those fires.</p> + +<p>In the years of his childhood he had languished +under the disease of his country, the rickets; after +which, notwithstanding many have become strong and +active men; but whether any have attained unto very +great years, the disease is scarce so old as to afford good +observation. Whether the children of the English +plantations be subject unto the same infirmity, may be +worth the observing. Whether lameness and halting do +still increase among the inhabitants of Rovigno in Istria, +I know not; yet scarce twenty years ago Monsieur du +Loyr observed that a third part of that people halted; +but too certain it is, that the rickets increaseth among +us; the small-pox grows more pernicious than the great; +the king’s purse knows that the king’s evil grows more +common. Quartan agues are become no strangers in +Ireland; more common and mortal in England; and +though the ancients gave that disease<a name="FNanchor_XCVIII._98" id="FNanchor_XCVIII._98"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCVIII._98" class="fnanchor">[XCVIII.]</a> very good words, +yet now that bell<a name="FNanchor_XCIX._99" id="FNanchor_XCIX._99"></a><a href="#Footnote_XCIX._99" class="fnanchor">[XCIX.]</a> makes no strange sound which rings +out for the effects thereof.</p> + +<p>Some think there were few consumptions in the old +world, when men lived much upon milk; and that the +ancient inhabitants of this island were less troubled +with coughs when they went naked and slept in caves +and woods, than men now in chambers and feather-beds. +Plato will tell us, that there was no such disease as a +catarrh in Homer’s time, and that it was but new in +Greece in his age. Polydore Virgil delivereth that +pleurisies were rare in England, who lived but in the +days of Henry the Eighth. Some will allow no diseases +to be new, others think that many old ones are ceased: +and that such which are esteemed new, will have but +their time: however, the mercy of God hath scattered +the great heap of diseases, and not loaded any one +country with all: some may be new in one country +which have been old in another. New discoveries of +the earth discover new diseases: for besides the common +swarm, there are endemial and local infirmities proper +unto certain regions, which in the whole earth make no +small number: and if Asia, Africa, and America, should +bring in their list, Pandora’s box would swell, and there +must be a strange pathology.</p> + +<p>Most men expected to find a consumed kell,<a name="FNanchor_119" id="FNanchor_119"></a><a href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a> empty +and bladder-like guts, livid and marbled lungs, and a +withered pericardium in this exsuccous corpse: but some +seemed too much to wonder that two lobes of his lungs +adhered unto his side; for the like I have often found +in bodies of no suspected consumptions or difficulty of +respiration. And the same more often happeneth in +men than other animals: and some think in women +than in men: but the most remarkable I have met +with, was in a man, after a cough of almost fifty years, +in whom all the lobes adhered unto the pleura, and +each lobe unto another; who having also been much +troubled with the gout, brake the rule of Cardan,<a name="FNanchor_C._100" id="FNanchor_C._100"></a><a href="#Footnote_C._100" class="fnanchor">[C.]</a> and +died of the stone in the bladder. Aristotle makes a +query, why some animals cough, as man; some not, as +oxen. If coughing be taken as it consisteth of a +natural and voluntary motion, including expectoration +and spitting out, it may be as proper unto man as +bleeding at the nose; otherwise we find that Vegetius +and rural writers have not left so many medicines in vain +against the coughs of cattle; and men who perish by +coughs die the death of sheep, cats, and lions: and +though birds have no midriff, yet we meet with divers +remedies in Arrianus against the coughs of hawks. +And though it might be thought that all animals who +have lungs do cough; yet in cataceous fishes, who have +large and strong lungs, the same is not observed; nor +yet in oviparous quadrupeds: and in the greatest +thereof, the crocodile, although we read much of their +tears, we find nothing of that motion.</p> + +<p>From the thoughts of sleep, when the soul was conceived +nearest unto divinity, the ancients erected an +art of divination, wherein while they too widely expatiated +in loose and in consequent conjectures, Hippocrates<a name="FNanchor_CI._101" id="FNanchor_CI._101"></a><a href="#Footnote_CI._101" class="fnanchor">[CI.]</a> +wisely considered dreams as they presaged +alterations in the body, and so afforded hints toward +the preservation of health, and prevention of diseases; +and therein was so serious as to advise alteration of +diet, exercise, sweating, bathing, and vomiting; and +also so religious as to order prayers and supplications +unto respective deities, in good dreams unto Sol, +Jupiter cœlestis, Jupiter opulentus, Minerva, Mercurius, +and Apollo; in bad, unto Tellus and the +heroes.</p> + +<p>And therefore I could not but notice how his female +friends were irrationally curious so strictly to examine +his dreams, and in this low state to hope for the +phantasms of health. He was now past the healthful +dreams of the sun, moon, and stars, in their clarity and +proper courses. ’Twas too late to dream of flying, of +limpid fountains, smooth waters, white vestments, and +fruitful green trees, which are the visions of healthful +sleeps, and at good distance from the grave.</p> + +<p>And they were also too deeply dejected that he should +dream of his dead friends, inconsequently divining, that +he would not be long from them; for strange it was not +that he should sometimes dream of the dead, whose +thoughts run always upon death; beside, to dream of +the dead, so they appear not in dark habits, and take +nothing away from us, in Hippocrates’ sense was of good +signification: for we live by the dead, and everything +is or must be so before it becomes our nourishment. +And Cardan, who dreamed that he discoursed with his +dead father in the moon, made thereof no mortal interpretation; +and even to dream that we are dead, was +having a signification of liberty, vacuity from cares, +exemption and freedom from troubles unknown unto +the dead.</p> + +<p>Some dreams I confess may admit of easy and feminine +exposition; he who dreamed that he could not see +his right shoulder, might easily fear to lose the sight of +his right eye; he that before a journey dreamed that +his feet were cut off, had a plain warning not to undertake +his intended journey. But why to dream of lettuce +should presage some ensuing disease, why to eat figs +should signify foolish talk, why to eat eggs great trouble, +and to dream of blindness should be so highly commended, +according to the oneirocritical verses of Astrampsychus +and Nicephorus, I shall leave unto your +divination.</p> + +<p>He was willing to quit the world alone and altogether, +leaving no earnest behind him for corruption or after-grave, +having small content in that common satisfaction +to survive or live in another, but amply satisfied that +his disease should die with himself, nor revive in a posterity +to puzzle physic, and make sad mementoes of their +parent hereditary. Leprosy awakes not sometimes before +forty, the gout and stone often later; but consumptive +and tabid<a name="FNanchor_CII._102" id="FNanchor_CII._102"></a><a href="#Footnote_CII._102" class="fnanchor">[CII.]</a> roots sprout more early, and at the fairest +make seventeen years of our life doubtful before that +age. They that enter the world with original diseases +as well as sin, have not only common mortality but sick +traductions to destroy them, make commonly short +courses, and live not at length but in figures; so that a +sound Cæsarean nativity<a name="FNanchor_CIII._103" id="FNanchor_CIII._103"></a><a href="#Footnote_CIII._103" class="fnanchor">[CIII.]</a> may outlast a natural birth, +and a knife may sometimes make way for a more lasting +fruit than a midwife; which makes so few infants +now able to endure the old test of the river,<a name="FNanchor_CIV._104" id="FNanchor_CIV._104"></a><a href="#Footnote_CIV._104" class="fnanchor">[CIV.]</a> and many +to have feeble children who could scarce have been married +at Sparta, and those provident states who studied +strong and healthful generations; which happen but +contingently in mere pecuniary matches or marriages +made by the candle, wherein notwithstanding there is +little redress to be hoped from an astrologer or a lawyer, +and a good discerning physician were like to prove the +most successful counsellor.</p> + +<p>Julius Scaliger, who in a sleepless fit of the gout could +make two hundred verses in a night, would have but +five<a name="FNanchor_CV._105" id="FNanchor_CV._105"></a><a href="#Footnote_CV._105" class="fnanchor">[CV.]</a> plain words upon his tomb. And this serious person, +though no minor wit, left the poetry of his epitaph +unto others; either unwilling to commend himself, or +to be judged by a distich, and perhaps considering how +unhappy great poets have been in versifying their own +epitaphs; wherein Petrarch, Dante, and Ariosto, have +so unhappily failed, that if their tombs should outlast +their works, posterity would find so little of Apollo on +them as to mistake them for Ciceronian poets.</p> + +<p>In this deliberate and creeping progress unto the +grave, he was somewhat too young and of too noble a +mind, to fall upon that stupid symptom observable in +divers persons near their journey’s end, and which may +be reckoned among the mortal symptoms of their last +disease; that is, to become more narrow-minded, miserable, +and tenacious, unready to part with anything, +when they are ready to part with all, and afraid to want +when they have no time to spend; meanwhile physicians, +who know that many are mad but in a single +depraved imagination, and one prevalent decipiency; +and that beside and out of such single deliriums a man +may meet with sober actions and good sense in bedlam; +cannot but smile to see the heirs and concerned relations +gratulating themselves on the sober departure of their +friends; and though they behold such mad covetous +passages, content to think they die in good understanding, +and in their sober senses.</p> + +<p>Avarice, which is not only infidelity, but idolatry, +either from covetous progeny or questuary<a name="FNanchor_120" id="FNanchor_120"></a><a href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a> education, +had no root in his breast, who made good works the +expression of his faith, and was big with desires unto +public and lasting charities; and surely where good +wishes and charitable intentions exceed abilities, theorical +beneficency may be more than a dream. They build +not castles in the air who would build churches on +earth; and though they leave no such structures here, +may lay good foundations in heaven. In brief, his life +and death were such, that I could not blame them who +wished the like, and almost to have been himself; +almost, I say; for though we may wish the prosperous +appurtenances of others, or to be another in his happy +accidents, yet so intrinsical is every man unto himself, +that some doubt may be made, whether any would +exchange his being, or substantially become another +man.</p> + +<p>He had wisely seen the world at home and abroad, +and thereby observed under what variety men are deluded +in the pursuit of that which is not here to be +found. And although he had no opinion of reputed +felicities below, and apprehended men widely out in the +estimate of such happiness, yet his sober contempt of the +world wrought no Democratism or Cynicism, no laughing +or snarling at it, as well understanding there are not +felicities in this world to satisfy a serious mind; and +therefore, to soften the stream of our lives, we are fain +to take in the reputed contentations of this world, to +unite with the crowd in their beatitudes, and to make +ourselves happy by consortion, opinion, and co-existimation; +for strictly to separate from received and customary +felicities, and to confine unto the rigour of +realities, were to contract the consolation of our beings +unto too uncomfortable circumscriptions.</p> + +<p>Not to fear death,<a name="FNanchor_CVI._106" id="FNanchor_CVI._106"></a><a href="#Footnote_CVI._106" class="fnanchor">[CVI.]</a> nor desire it, was short of his resolution: +to be dissolved, and be with Christ, was his +dying ditty. He conceived his thread long, in no long +course of years, and when he had scarce outlived the +second life of Lazarus;<a name="FNanchor_CVII._107" id="FNanchor_CVII._107"></a><a href="#Footnote_CVII._107" class="fnanchor">[CVII.]</a> esteeming it enough to approach +the years of his Saviour, who so ordered his own human +state, as not to be old upon earth.</p> + +<p>But to be content with death may be better than to +desire it; a miserable life may make us wish for death, +but a virtuous one to rest in it; which is the advantage +of those resolved Christians, who looking on death not +only as the sting, but the period and end of sin, the +horizon and isthmus between this life and a better, and +the death of this world but as a nativity of another, +do contentedly submit unto the common necessity, and +envy not Enoch or Elias.</p> + +<p>Not to be content with life is the unsatisfactory state +of those who destroy themselves,<a name="FNanchor_CVIII._108" id="FNanchor_CVIII._108"></a><a href="#Footnote_CVIII._108" class="fnanchor">[CVIII.]</a> who being afraid to +live run blindly upon their own death, which no man +fears by experience: and the Stoics had a notable doctrine +to take away the fear thereof; that is, in such extremities, +to desire that which is not to be avoided, and +wish what might be feared; and so made evils voluntary, +and to suit with their own desires, which took off the +terror of them.</p> + +<p>But the ancient martyrs were not encouraged by such +fallacies; who, though they feared not death, were afraid +to be their own executioners; and therefore thought it +more wisdom to crucify their lusts than their bodies, to +circumcise than stab their hearts, and to mortify than +kill themselves.</p> + +<p>His willingness to leave this world about that age, +when most men think they may best enjoy it, though +paradoxical unto worldly ears, was not strange unto +mine, who have so often observed, that many, though +old, oft stick fast unto the world, and seem to be drawn +like Cacus’s oxen<a name="FNanchor_121" id="FNanchor_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a>, backward, with great struggling and +reluctancy unto the grave. The long habit of living +makes mere men more hardly to part with life, and all +to be nothing, but what is to come. To live at the rate +of the old world, when some could scarce remember +themselves young, may afford no better digested death +than a more moderate period. Many would have +thought it an happiness to have had their lot of life +in some notable conjunctures of ages past; but the +uncertainty of future times have tempted few to make +a part in ages to come. And surely, he that hath taken +the true altitude of things, and rightly calculated the +degenerate state of this age, is not like to envy those +that shall live in the next, much less three or four hundred +years hence, when no man can comfortably imagine +what face this world will carry: and therefore since +every age makes a step unto the end of all things, and +the Scripture affords so hard a character of the last +times; quiet minds will be content with their generations, +and rather bless ages past, than be ambitious of +those to come.</p> + +<p>Though age had set no seal upon his face, yet a dim +eye might clearly discover fifty in his actions; and +therefore, since wisdom is the grey hair, and an unspotted +life old age; although his years come short, he +might have been said to have held up with longer +livers, and to have been Solomon’s<a name="FNanchor_CIX._109" id="FNanchor_CIX._109"></a><a href="#Footnote_CIX._109" class="fnanchor">[CIX.]</a> old man. And +surely if we deduct all those days of our life which +we might wish unlived, and which abate the comfort of +those we now live; if we reckon up only those days +which God hath accepted of our lives, a life of good +years will hardly be a span long: the son in this sense +may outlive the father, and none be climacterically +old. He that early arriveth unto the parts and prudence +of age, is happily old without the uncomfortable +attendants of it; and ’tis superfluous to live unto grey +hairs, when in precocious temper we anticipate the +virtues of them. In brief, he cannot be accounted +young who outliveth the old man. He that hath early +arrived unto the measure of a perfect stature in Christ, +hath already fulfilled the prime and longest intention +of his being; and one day lived after the perfect +rule of piety, is to be preferred before sinning immortality.</p> + +<p>Although he attained not unto the years of his predecessors, +yet he wanted not those preserving virtues +which confirm the thread of weaker constitutions. <i>Cautelous</i> +chastity and <i>crafty</i> sobriety were far from him; +those jewels were <i>paragon</i>, without flaw, hair, ice, or +cloud in him; which affords me a hint to proceed in +these good wishes, and few mementoes unto you.</p> + +<p>Tread softly and circumspectly in this funambulous<a name="FNanchor_122" id="FNanchor_122"></a><a href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a> +track and narrow path of goodness; pursue virtue +virtuously, be sober and temperate, not to preserve your +body in a sufficiency for wanton ends, not to spare your +purse, not to be free from the infamy of common transgressors +that way, and thereby to balance or palliate +obscure and closer vices, nor simply to enjoy health, by +all of which you may leaven good actions, and render +virtues disputable, but, in one word, that you may truly +serve God, which every sickness will tell you you cannot +well do without health. The sick man’s sacrifice is but +a lame oblation. Pious treasures, laid up in healthful +days, excuse the defect of sick non-performance; without +which we must needs look back with anxiety upon the +last opportunities of health; and may have cause rather +to envy than pity the ends of penitent malefactors, who +go with clear parts unto the last act of their lives, and +in the integrity of their faculties return their spirit unto +God that gave it.</p> + +<p>Consider whereabouts thou art in Cebe’s<a name="FNanchor_123" id="FNanchor_123"></a><a href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a> table, or +that old philosophical pinax<a name="FNanchor_124" id="FNanchor_124"></a><a href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a> of the life of man; +whether thou art still in the road of uncertainties; +whether thou hast yet entered the narrow gate, got up +the hill and asperous way which leadeth unto the house +of sanity; or taken that purifying potion from the hand +of sincere erudition, which may send thee clear and pure +away unto a virtuous and happy life.</p> + +<p>In this virtuous voyage let no disappointment cause +despondency, nor difficulty despair. Think not that +you are sailing from Lima to Manilla,<a name="FNanchor_CX._110" id="FNanchor_CX._110"></a><a href="#Footnote_CX._110" class="fnanchor">[CX.]</a> <a name="FNanchor_125" id="FNanchor_125"></a><a href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a> wherein +thou mayest tie up the rudder, and sleep before the +wind, but expect rough seas, flaws and contrary blasts; +and ’tis well if by many cross tacks and veerings thou +arrivest at the port. Sit not down in the popular +seats and common level of virtues, but endeavour to +make them heroical. Offer not only peace-offerings but +holocausts unto God. To serve him singly to serve ourselves +were too partial a piece of piety, not like to place +us in the highest mansions of glory.</p> + +<p>He that is chaste and continent not to impair his +strength or terrified by contagion will hardly be heroically +virtuous. Adjourn not that virtue until those years +when Cato could lend out his wife, and impotent satyrs +write satires against lust, but be chaste in thy flaming +days when Alexander dared not trust his eyes upon the +fair sisters of Darius, and when so many think that +there is no other way but Origen’s.<a name="FNanchor_CXI._111" id="FNanchor_CXI._111"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXI._111" class="fnanchor">[CXI.]</a></p> + +<p>Be charitable before wealth make thee covetous, and +lose not the glory of the mitre. If riches increase, let +thy mind hold pace with them, and think it is not +enough to be liberal but munificent. Though a cup of +cold water from some hand may not be without its +reward, yet stick not thou for wine and oil for the +wounds of the distressed, and treat the poor as our +Saviour did the multitude to the reliques of some +baskets.</p> + +<p>Trust not unto the omnipotency of gold, or say not +unto it, thou art my confidence. Kiss not thy hand +when thou beholdest that terrestrial sun, nor bore thy +ear unto its servitude. A slave unto Mammon makes +no servant unto God. Covetousness cracks the sinews +of faith, numbs the apprehension of anything above +sense; and only affected with the certainty of things +present, makes a peradventure of things to come; lives +but unto one world, nor hopes but fears another: makes +their own death sweet unto others, bitter unto themselves, +brings formal sadness, scenical mourning, and +no wet eyes at the grave.</p> + +<p>If avarice be thy vice, yet make it not thy punishment. +Miserable men commiserate not themselves, +bowelless unto themselves, and merciless unto their +own bowels. Let the fruition of things bless the +possession of them, and take no satisfaction in dying +but living rich. For since thy good works, not thy +goods will follow thee; since riches are an appurtenance +of life, and no dead man is rich, to famish in plenty, +and live poorly to die rich, were a multiplying improvement +in madness and use upon use in folly.</p> + +<p>Persons lightly dipt, not grained, in generous honesty +are but pale in goodness and faint-hued in sincerity. +But be thou what thou virtuously art, and let not the +ocean wash away thy tincture. Stand majestically upon +that axis where prudent simplicity hath fixed thee; +and at no temptation invert the poles of thy honesty +that vice may be uneasy and even monstrous unto +thee; let iterated good acts and long confirmed habits +make virtue natural or a second nature in thee; and since +few or none prove eminently virtuous but from some +advantageous foundations in their temper and natural +inclinations, study thyself betimes, and early find what +nature bids thee to be or tells thee what thou mayest +be. They who thus timely descend into themselves, +cultivating the good seeds which nature hath set in them, +and improving their prevalent inclinations to perfection, +become not shrubs but cedars in their generation. And +to be in the form of the best of bad, or the worst of the +good, will be no satisfaction unto them.</p> + +<p>Let not the law of thy country be the <i>non ultra</i> of +thy honesty, nor think that always good enough that +the law will make good. Narrow not the law of +charity, equity, mercy. Join gospel righteousness with +legal right. Be not a mere Gamaliel in the faith, but +let the Sermon on the Mount be thy Targum unto the +law of Sinai.</p> + +<p>Make not the consequences of virtue the ends +thereof. Be not beneficent for a name or cymbal +of applause; nor exact and punctual in commerce for +the advantages of trust and credit, which attend the +reputation of just and true dealing: for such rewards, +though unsought for, plain virtue will bring with her, +whom all men honour, though they pursue not. To +have other by-ends in good actions sours laudable +performances, which must have deeper roots, motives, +and instigations, to give them the stamp of virtues.</p> + +<p>Though human infirmity may betray thy heedless +days into the popular ways of extravagancy, yet, let +not thine own depravity or the torrent of vicious times +carry thee into desperate enormities in opinions, manners, +or actions. If thou hast dipped thy foot in the river, +yet venture not over Rubicon; run not into extremities +from whence there is no regression, nor be ever so closely +shut up within the holds of vice and iniquity, as not +to find some escape by a postern of recipiscency.<a name="FNanchor_126" id="FNanchor_126"></a><a href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a></p> + +<p>Owe not thy humility unto humiliation by adversity, +but look humbly down in that state when others look +upward upon thee. Be patient in the age of pride, +and days of will, and impatiency, when men live but by +intervals of reason, under the sovereignty of humour and +passion, when it is in the power of every one to transform +thee out of thyself, and put thee into short madness.<a name="FNanchor_CXII._112" id="FNanchor_CXII._112"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXII._112" class="fnanchor">[CXII.]</a> +If you cannot imitate Job, yet come not short of +Socrates, and those patient Pagans, who tired the +tongues of their enemies, while they perceived they +spit their malice at brazen walls and statues.</p> + +<p>Let age, not envy, draw wrinkles on thy cheeks; be +content to be envied, but envy not. Emulation may be +plausible, and indignation allowable, but admit no treaty +with that passion which no circumstance can make +good. A displacency at the good of others, because +they enjoy it although we do not want it, is an absurd +depravity sticking fast unto nature, from its primitive +corruption, which he that can well subdue were a +Christian of the first magnitude, and for ought I know +may have one foot already in heaven.</p> + +<p>While thou so hotly disclaimest the devil, be not +guilty of Diabolism. Fall not into one name with that +unclean spirit, nor act his nature whom thou so much +abhorrest, that is, to accuse, calumniate, backbite, +whisper, detract, or sinistrously interpret others. Degenerous +depravities and narrow-minded vices! not only +below St Paul’s noble Christian, but Aristotle’s true gentleman.<a name="FNanchor_CXIII._113" id="FNanchor_CXIII._113"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXIII._113" class="fnanchor">[CXIII.]</a> +Trust not with some that the Epistle of St +James is apocryphal, and so read with less fear that +stabbing truth that in company with this vice, “thy +religion is in vain.” Moses broke the tables without +breaking the law, but where charity is broke the law +itself is shattered, which cannot be whole without love +that is “the fulfilling of it.” Look humbly upon thy +virtues, and though thou art rich in some, yet think +thyself poor and naked without that crowning grace +which “thinketh no evil, which envieth not, which +beareth, believeth, hopeth, endureth all things.” +With these sure graces while busy tongues are crying +out for a drop of cold water, mutes may be in happiness, +and sing the “Trisagium,”<a name="FNanchor_CXIV._114" id="FNanchor_CXIV._114"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXIV._114" class="fnanchor">[CXIV.]</a> in heaven.</p> + +<p>Let not the sun in Capricorn<a name="FNanchor_CXV._115" id="FNanchor_CXV._115"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXV._115" class="fnanchor">[CXV.]</a> go down upon thy +wrath, but write thy wrongs in water, draw the curtain +of night upon injuries, shut them up in the tower of +oblivion,<a name="FNanchor_CXVI._116" id="FNanchor_CXVI._116"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXVI._116" class="fnanchor">[CXVI.]</a> and let them be as though they had not been. +Forgive thine enemies totally, without any reserve of +hope that however God will revenge thee.</p> + +<p>Be substantially great in thyself, and more than thou +appearest unto others; and let the world be deceived +in thee, as they are in the lights of heaven. Hang early +plummets upon the heels of pride, and let ambition +have but an epicycle<a name="FNanchor_127" id="FNanchor_127"></a><a href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a> or narrow circuit in thee. +Measure not thyself by thy morning shadow, but by +the extent of thy grave; and reckon thyself above +the earth, by the line thou must be contented with +under it. Spread not into boundless expansions either +to designs or desires. Think not that mankind liveth +but for a few; and that the rest are born but to serve +the ambition of those who make but flies of men, and +wildernesses of whole nations. Swell not into vehement +actions, which embroil and confound the earth, but be +one of those violent ones that force the kingdom of +heaven.<a name="FNanchor_CXVII._117" id="FNanchor_CXVII._117"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXVII._117" class="fnanchor">[CXVII.]</a> If thou must needs rule, be Zeno’s king, and +enjoy that empire which every man gives himself: +certainly the iterated injunctions of Christ unto humility, +meekness, patience, and that despised train of virtues, +cannot but make pathetical impression upon those +who have well considered the affairs of all ages; +wherein pride, ambition, and vain-glory, have led +up to the worst of actions, whereunto confusions, +tragedies, and acts, denying all religion, do owe their +originals.</p> + +<p>Rest not in an ovation,<a name="FNanchor_CXVIII._118" id="FNanchor_CXVIII._118"></a><a href="#Footnote_CXVIII._118" class="fnanchor">[CXVIII.]</a> but a triumph over thy +passions. Chain up the unruly legion of thy breast; +behold thy trophies within thee, not without thee. +Lead thine own captivity captive, and be Cæsar unto +thyself.</p> + +<p>Give no quarter unto those vices that are of thine +inward family, and, having a root in thy temper, plead +a right and propriety in thee. Examine well thy complexional +inclinations. Rain early batteries against +those strongholds built upon the rock of nature, and +make this a great part of the militia of thy life. The +politic nature of vice must be opposed by policy, and +therefore wiser honesties project and plot against sin; +wherein notwithstanding we are not to rest in generals, +or the trite stratagems of art; that may succeed with +one temper, which may prove successless with another. +There is no community or commonwealth of virtue, +every man must study his own economy and erect +these rules unto the figure of himself.</p> + +<p>Lastly, if length of days be thy portion, make it not +thy expectation. Reckon not upon long life; but live +always beyond thy account. He that so often surviveth +his expectation lives many lives, and will scarce +complain of the shortness of his days. Time past is +gone like a shadow; make times to come present; conceive +that near which may be far off. Approximate +thy latter times by present apprehensions of them: be +like a neighbour unto death, and think there is but +little to come. And since there is something in us that +must still live on, join both lives together, unite them +in thy thoughts and actions, and live in one but for the +other. He who thus ordereth the purposes of this life, +will never be far from the next, and is in some manner +already in it, by a happy conformity and close apprehension +of it.</p> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 175px;"> +<img src="images/zill_210.png" width="175" height="178" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;"> +<img src="images/zill_211.png" width="450" height="106" alt="decoration" /> +</div> + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="NOTES_TO_THE_RELIGIO_MEDICI" id="NOTES_TO_THE_RELIGIO_MEDICI">NOTES TO THE RELIGIO MEDICI.</a></h2> + +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"> +<span class="label">1.</span></a> +It was a proverb, “Ubi tres medici duo athei.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2"><span class="label">2.</span></a> A Latinised word meaning a taunt (impropero.)</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3"><span class="label">3.</span></a> The synod of Dort was held in 1619 to discuss the doctrines of +Arminius. It ended by condemning them.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_4" id="Footnote_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4"><span class="label">4.</span></a> Hallam, commenting on this passage, says—“That Jesuit must be a +disgrace to his order who would have asked more than such a concession +to secure a proselyte—the right of interpreting whatever +was written, and of supplying whatever was not.”—<i>Hist. England</i>, +vol. ii. p. 74.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_5" id="Footnote_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5"><span class="label">5.</span></a> See the statute of the Six Articles (31 Hen. VIII. c. 14), which declared +that transubstantiation, communion in one kind, celibacy +of the clergy, vows of widowhood, private masses, and auricular +confession, were part of the law of England.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_6" id="Footnote_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6"><span class="label">6.</span></a> In the year 1606, when the Jesuits were expelled from Venice, Pope +Paul V. threatened to excommunicate that republic. A most +violent quarrel ensued, which was ultimately settled by the mediation +of France.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_7" id="Footnote_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7"><span class="label">7.</span></a> Alluding to the story of Œdipus solving the riddle proposed by the +Sphynx.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_8" id="Footnote_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8"><span class="label">8.</span></a> The nymph Arethusa was changed by Diana into a fountain, and +was said to have flowed under the sea from Elis to the fountain of +Arethusa near Syracuse.—Ov. <i>Met.</i> lib. v. fab. 8.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_9" id="Footnote_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9"><span class="label">9.</span></a> These heretics denied the immortality of the soul, but held that it +was recalled to life with the body. Origen came from Egypt to +confute them, and is said to have succeeded. (See Mosh. <i>Eccl. +Hist.</i>, lib. i. c. 5. sec. 16.) Pope John XXII. afterwards +adopted it.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_10" id="Footnote_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10"><span class="label">10.</span></a> A division from the Greek διχοτομια.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_11" id="Footnote_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11"><span class="label">11.</span></a> The brain.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_12" id="Footnote_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12"><span class="label">12.</span></a> A faint resemblance, from the Latin <i>adumbro</i>, to shade.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_13" id="Footnote_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13"><span class="label">13.</span></a> Alluding to the idea Sir T. Browne often expresses, that an oracle +was the utterance of the devil.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_14" id="Footnote_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14"><span class="label">14.</span></a> To fathom, from Latin <i>profundus</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_15" id="Footnote_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15"><span class="label">15.</span></a> Beginning from the Latin <i>efficio</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_16" id="Footnote_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16"><span class="label">16.</span></a> Galen’s great work.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_17" id="Footnote_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17"><span class="label">17.</span></a> John de Monte Regio made a wooden eagle that, when the emperor +was entering Nuremburg, flew to meet him, and hovered over his +head. He also made an iron fly that, when at dinner, he was +able to make start from under his hand, and fly round the table.—See +De Bartas, 6<sup>me</sup> jour 1<sup>me</sup> semaine.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_18" id="Footnote_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18"><span class="label">18.</span></a> Hidden, from the Greek κρυπτω.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_19" id="Footnote_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19"><span class="label">19.</span></a> A military term for a small mine.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_20" id="Footnote_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20"><span class="label">20.</span></a> The Armada.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_21" id="Footnote_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21"><span class="label">21.</span></a> The practice of drawing lots.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_22" id="Footnote_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22"><span class="label">22.</span></a> An account.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_23" id="Footnote_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23"><span class="label">23.</span></a> See Il. VIII. 18—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“Let down our golden everlasting chain,</div> + <div class="verse">Whose strong embrace holds heaven, and earth, and main.”</div> + <div class="verse indent4">—<i>Pope</i>, Il. viii. 26.</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_24" id="Footnote_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24"><span class="label">24.</span></a> An argument where one proposition is accumulated upon another, +from the Greek σωρειτης, a heap.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_25" id="Footnote_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25"><span class="label">25.</span></a> Alluding to the second triumvirate—that of Augustus, Antony, and +Lepidus. Florus says of it, “Respublica convulsa est lacerataque.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_26" id="Footnote_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26"><span class="label">26.</span></a> Ochinus. He was first a monk, then a doctor, then a Capuchin friar, +then a Protestant: in 1547 he came to England, and was very +active in the Reformation. He was afterwards made Canon of +Canterbury. The Socinians claim him as one of their sect.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_27" id="Footnote_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27"><span class="label">27.</span></a> The father of Pantagruel. His adventures are given in the first book +of Rabelais, Sir Bevys of Hampton, a metrical romance, relating +the adventures of Sir Bevys with the Saracens.—Wright and +Halliwell’s <i>Reliquiæ Antiquæ</i>, ii. 59.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_28" id="Footnote_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28"><span class="label">28.</span></a> Contradictions between two laws.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_29" id="Footnote_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29"><span class="label">29.</span></a> On his arrival at Paris, Pantagruel visited the library of St Victor: +he states a list of the works he found there, among which was +“Tartaretus.” Pierre Tartaret was a French doctor who disputed +with Duns Scotus. His works were republished at Lyons, 1621.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_30" id="Footnote_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30"><span class="label">30.</span></a> Deucalion was king of Thessaly at the time of the deluge. He and +his wife Pyrrha, with the advice of the oracle of Themis, repeopled +the earth by throwing behind them the bones of their grandmother,—<i>i.e.</i>, +stones of the earth.—See Ovid, <i>Met.</i> lib. i. +fab. 7.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_31" id="Footnote_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31"><span class="label">31.</span></a> St Augustine (De Civ. Dei, xvi. 7).</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_32" id="Footnote_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32"><span class="label">32.</span></a> απηγξατο (St Matt. xxvii. 5) means death by choking. Erasmus +translates it, “abiens laqueo se suspendit.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_33" id="Footnote_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33"><span class="label">33.</span></a> Burnt by order of the Caliph Omar, A.D. 640. It contained 700,000 +volumes, which served the city for fuel instead of wood for six months.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_34" id="Footnote_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34"><span class="label">34.</span></a> Enoch being informed by Adam the world was to be drowned and +burnt, made two pillars, one of stone to withstand the water, and +one of brick to withstand the fire, and inscribed upon them all +known knowledge.—See Josephus, <i>Ant. Jud.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_35" id="Footnote_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35"><span class="label">35.</span></a> A Franciscan friar, counsellor to the Inquisition, who visited the +principal libraries in Spain to make a catalogue of the books opposed +to the Romish religion. His “index novus librorum prohibitorum” +was published at Seville in 1631.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_36" id="Footnote_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36"><span class="label">36.</span></a> Printing, gunpowder, clocks.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_37" id="Footnote_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37"><span class="label">37.</span></a> The Targums and the various Talmuds.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_38" id="Footnote_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38"><span class="label">38.</span></a> Pagans, Mahometans, Jews, Christians.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_39" id="Footnote_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39"><span class="label">39.</span></a> Valour, and death in battle.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_40" id="Footnote_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40"><span class="label">40.</span></a> Held 1414-1418.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_41" id="Footnote_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41"><span class="label">41.</span></a> Vergilius, bishop of Salzburg, having asserted the existence of +Antipodes, the Archbishop of Metz declared him to be a heretic, +and caused him to be burnt.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_42" id="Footnote_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42"><span class="label">42.</span></a> On searching on Mount Calvary for the true cross, the empress +found three. As she was uncertain which was the right one, she +caused them to be applied to the body of a dead man, and the +one that restored him to life was determined to be the true cross.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_43" id="Footnote_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43"><span class="label">43.</span></a> The critical time in human life.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_44" id="Footnote_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44"><span class="label">44.</span></a> Oracles were said to have ceased when Christ came, the reply to +Augustus on the subject being the last—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“Me puer Hebræus divos Deus ipse gubernans</div> + <div class="verse">Cedere sede jubet tristemque redire sub Orcum</div> + <div class="verse">Aris ergo de hinc tacitus discedito nostris.”</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_45" id="Footnote_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45"><span class="label">45.</span></a> An historian who wrote “De Rebus Indicis.” He is cited by Pliny, +Strabo, and Josephus.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_46" id="Footnote_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46"><span class="label">46.</span></a> Alluding to the popular superstition that infant children were carried +off by fairies, and others left in their places.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_47" id="Footnote_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47"><span class="label">47.</span></a> Who is said to have lived without meat, on the smell of a rose.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_48" id="Footnote_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48"><span class="label">48.</span></a> “Essentiæ rationalis immortalis.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_49" id="Footnote_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49"><span class="label">49.</span></a> St Augustine, De Civ. Dei, lib. x., cc. 9, 19, 32.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_50" id="Footnote_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50"><span class="label">50.</span></a> That which includes everything is opposed to nullity.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_51" id="Footnote_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51"><span class="label">51.</span></a> An inversion of the parts of an antithesis.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_52" id="Footnote_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52"><span class="label">52.</span></a> St Augustine—“Homily on Genesis.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_53" id="Footnote_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53"><span class="label">53.</span></a> Sir T. Browne wrote a dialogue between two twins in the womb +respecting the world into which they were going!</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_54" id="Footnote_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54"><span class="label">54.</span></a> Refinement.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_55" id="Footnote_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55"><span class="label">55.</span></a> Constitution another form of temperament.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_56" id="Footnote_56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_56"><span class="label">56.</span></a> The Jewish computation for fifty years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_57" id="Footnote_57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_57"><span class="label">57.</span></a> Saturn revolves once in thirty years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_58" id="Footnote_58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_58"><span class="label">58.</span></a> Christian IV., of Denmark, who reigned from 1588-1647.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_59" id="Footnote_59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_59"><span class="label">59.</span></a> Æson was the father of Jason. By bathing in a bath prepared for him +by Medæa with some magic spells, he became young again. Ovid +describes the bath and its ingredients, <i>Met.</i>, lib. vii. fab. 2.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_60" id="Footnote_60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_60"><span class="label">60.</span></a> Alluding to the rabbinical tradition that the world would last for +6000 years, attributed to Elias, and cited in the Talmud.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_61" id="Footnote_61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_61"><span class="label">61.</span></a> Zeno was the founder of the Stoics.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_62" id="Footnote_62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_62"><span class="label">62.</span></a> Referring to a passage in Suetonius, Vit. J. Cæsar, sec 87:—“Aspernatus +tam lentum mortis genus subitam sibi celeremque optaverat.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_63" id="Footnote_63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_63"><span class="label">63.</span></a> In holding</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse indent6">“Mors ultima pœna est,</div> + <div class="verse">Nec metuenda viris.”</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_64" id="Footnote_64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_64"><span class="label">64.</span></a> The period when the moon is in conjunction and obscured by the sun.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_65" id="Footnote_65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_65"><span class="label">65.</span></a> One of the judges of hell.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_66" id="Footnote_66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_66"><span class="label">66.</span></a> To select some great man for our ideal, and always to act as if he +was present with us. See Seneca, lib. i. Ep. 11.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_67" id="Footnote_67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_67"><span class="label">67.</span></a> Sir T. Browne seems to have made various experiments in this +subject. D’Israeli refers to it in his “Curiosities of Literature.” +Dr Power, a friend of Sir T. Browne, with whom he corresponded, +gives a receipt for the process.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_68" id="Footnote_68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_68"><span class="label">68.</span></a> The celebrated Greek philosopher who taught that the sun was a +mass of heated stone, and various other astronomical doctrines. +Some critics say Anaxarchus is meant here.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_69" id="Footnote_69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_69"><span class="label">69.</span></a> See Milton’s “Paradise Lost,” lib. I. 254—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“The mind is its own place, and in itself</div> + <div class="verse">Can make a heaven of hell, a hell of heaven.”</div> +</div></div></div> + + +<p>And also Lucretius—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“Hic Acherusia fit stultorum denique vita.”—iii. 1023.</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_70" id="Footnote_70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_70"><span class="label">70.</span></a> Keck says here—“So did they all, as Lactantius has observed at +large. Aristotle is said to have been guilty of great vanity in +his clothes, of incontinency, and of unfaithfulness to his master, +Alexander II.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_71" id="Footnote_71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_71"><span class="label">71.</span></a> Phalaris, king of Agrigentum, who, when Perillus made a brazen +bull in which to kill criminals, placed him in it to try its effects.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_72" id="Footnote_72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_72"><span class="label">72.</span></a> Their maxim was</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“Nihil sciri siquis putat id quoque nescit,</div> + <div class="verse">An sciri possit quod se nil scire fatetur.”</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_73" id="Footnote_73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_73"><span class="label">73.</span></a> Pope Alexander III., in his declaration to the Doge, said,—“Que +la mer vous soit soumise comme l’epouse l’est à son epoux +puisque vous in avez acquis l’empire par la victorie.” In commemoration +of this the Doge and Senate went yearly to Lio, and +throwing a ring into the water, claimed the sea as their bride.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_74" id="Footnote_74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_74"><span class="label">74.</span></a> Appolonius Thyaneus, who threw a large quantity of gold into the +sea, saying, “Pessundo divitias ne pessundare ab illis.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_75" id="Footnote_75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_75"><span class="label">75.</span></a> The technical term in fencing for a hit—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“A sweet touch, a quick venew of wit.”</div> + <div class="verse indent4"><i>Love’s Labour Lost</i>, act v. sc. 1.</div> +</div></div></div> + +</div> +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_76" id="Footnote_76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_76"><span class="label">76.</span></a> Strabo compared the configuration of the world, as then known, to +a cloak or mantle (<i>chalmys</i>).</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_77" id="Footnote_77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_77"><span class="label">77.</span></a> Atomists or familists were a Puritanical sect who appeared about 1575, +founded by Henry Nicholas, a Dutchman. They considered that the +doctrine of revelation was an allegory, and believed that they had +attained to spiritual perfection.—See Neal’s Hist. of Puritans, i. 273.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_78" id="Footnote_78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_78"><span class="label">78.</span></a> From the 126th psalm St Augustine contends that Solomon is +damned. See also Lyra in 2 Kings vii.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_79" id="Footnote_79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_79"><span class="label">79.</span></a> From the Spanish “Dorado,” a gilt head.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_80" id="Footnote_80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_80"><span class="label">80.</span></a> Sir T. Browne treats of chiromancy, or the art of telling fortunes by +means of lines in the hands, in his “Vulgar Errors,” lib. v. cap. 23.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_81" id="Footnote_81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_81"><span class="label">81.</span></a> Gypsies.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_82" id="Footnote_82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_82"><span class="label">82.</span></a> S. Wilkin says that here this word means niggardly.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_83" id="Footnote_83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_83"><span class="label">83.</span></a> In the dialogue, “judicium vocalium,” the vowels are the judges, +and Σ complains that T has deprived him of many letters that +ought to begin with Σ.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_84" id="Footnote_84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_84"><span class="label">84.</span></a> If Jovis or Jupitris.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_85" id="Footnote_85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_85"><span class="label">85.</span></a> The celebrated Roman grammarian. A proverbial phrase for the +violation of grammar was “Breaking Priscian’s head.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_86" id="Footnote_86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_86"><span class="label">86.</span></a> Livy says, Actius Nevius cut a whetstone through with a razor.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_87" id="Footnote_87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_87"><span class="label">87.</span></a> A kind of lizard that was supposed to kill all it looked at—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse indent6">“Whose baneful eye</div> + <div class="verse">Wounds at a glance, so that the soundest dye.”</div> + <div class="verse indent4">—<i>De Bartas</i>, 6<sup>me</sup> jour 1<sup>me</sup> sem.</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_88" id="Footnote_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88"><span class="label">88.</span></a> Epimenides (Titus x. 12)—</p> + +<div class="blockquot"> + +<p>“Κρῆτες ἀεὶ ψεῦσται κακὰ θηριά γαστέρες αργαὶ.”</p></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_89" id="Footnote_89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_89"><span class="label">89.</span></a> Nero having heard a person say, “When I am dead, let earth be +mingled with fire,” replied, “Yes, while I live.”—Suetonius, +<i>Vit. Nero.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_90" id="Footnote_90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_90"><span class="label">90.</span></a> Alluding to the story of the Italian, who, having been provoked by +a person he met, put a poniard to his heart, and threatened to +kill him if he would not blaspheme God; and the stranger doing +so, the Italian killed him at once, that he might be damned, having +no time to repent.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_91" id="Footnote_91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_91"><span class="label">91.</span></a> A rapier or small sword.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_92" id="Footnote_92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_92"><span class="label">92.</span></a> The battle here referred to was the one between Don John of +Austria and the Turkish fleet, near Lepanto, in 1571. The battle +of Lepanto (that is, the capture of the town by the Turks) did not +take place till 1678.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_93" id="Footnote_93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_93"><span class="label">93.</span></a> Several authors say that Aristotle died of grief because he could +not find out the reason for the ebb and flow of the tide in Epirus.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_94" id="Footnote_94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_94"><span class="label">94.</span></a> Who deny that there is such a thing as science.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_95" id="Footnote_95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_95"><span class="label">95.</span></a> A motto on a ring or cup. In an old will, 1655, there is this +passage: “I give a cup of silver gilt to have this posy written in +the margin:—</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse">“When the drink is out, and the bottom you may see,</div> + <div class="verse">Remember your brother I. G.”</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_96" id="Footnote_96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_96"><span class="label">96.</span></a> The opposition of a contrary quality, by which the quality it opposes +becomes heightened.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_97" id="Footnote_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97"><span class="label">97.</span></a> Adam as he was created and not born.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_98" id="Footnote_98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_98"><span class="label">98.</span></a> Meaning a world, as Atlas supported the world on his shoulders.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_99" id="Footnote_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99"><span class="label">99.</span></a> Merriment. Johnson says that this is the only place where the +word is found.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_100" id="Footnote_100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_100"><span class="label">100.</span></a> Said to be a cure for madness.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_101" id="Footnote_101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_101"><span class="label">101.</span></a> Patched garments.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_102" id="Footnote_102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_102"><span class="label">102.</span></a> A game. A kind of capping verses, in which, if any one repeated +what had been said before, he paid a forfeit.</p></div> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="NOTES_TO_HYDRIOTAPHIA" id="NOTES_TO_HYDRIOTAPHIA">NOTES TO HYDRIOTAPHIA.</a></h2> + +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_103" id="Footnote_103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_103"><span class="label">103.</span></a> Just.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_104" id="Footnote_104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_104"><span class="label">104.</span></a> Destruction.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_105" id="Footnote_105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_105"><span class="label">105.</span></a> A chemical vessel made of earth, ashes, or burnt bones, and in +which assay-masters try their metals. It suffers all baser ones +when fused and mixed with lead to pass off, and retains only +gold and silver.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_106" id="Footnote_106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_106"><span class="label">106.</span></a> This substance known to French chemists by the name “adipo-cire,” +was first discovered by Sir Thomas Browne.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_107" id="Footnote_107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_107"><span class="label">107.</span></a> From its thickness.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_108" id="Footnote_108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_108"><span class="label">108.</span></a> Euripides.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_109" id="Footnote_109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_109"><span class="label">109.</span></a> Greek, Latin, Hebrew, Egyptian, Arabic defaced by the Emperor Licinius.</p></div> + + +<div class="chapter"> + +<h2 class="nobreak"><a name="NOTES_TO_LETTER_TO_A_FRIEND" id="NOTES_TO_LETTER_TO_A_FRIEND">NOTES TO LETTER TO A FRIEND.</a></h2> + +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_110" id="Footnote_110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_110"><span class="label">110.</span></a> Will not survive until next spring.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_111" id="Footnote_111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_111"><span class="label">111.</span></a> Wasting.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_112" id="Footnote_112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_112"><span class="label">112.</span></a> An eminent Italian Physician, lecturer in the University of Pavia, +died 1576. He was a most voluminous medical writer.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_113" id="Footnote_113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_113"><span class="label">113.</span></a> An eminent doctor and scholar who passed his time at Venice and +Padua studying and practising medicine, died 1568.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_114" id="Footnote_114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_114"><span class="label">114.</span></a> Charles V. was born 24th February, 1500.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_115" id="Footnote_115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_115"><span class="label">115.</span></a> Francis I. of France was taken prisoner at the battle of Pavia, 24th +February, 1525.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_116" id="Footnote_116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_116"><span class="label">116.</span></a> One of the greatest Protestant generals of the seventeenth century. +He died at Zara, 1626.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_117" id="Footnote_117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_117"><span class="label">117.</span></a> An inflation, or swelling, from the French bouffée.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_118" id="Footnote_118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_118"><span class="label">118.</span></a> August 20th, 1526. He was defeated by Solyman II., and suffocated +in a brook, by a fall from his horse, during the retreat.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_119" id="Footnote_119"></a><a href="#FNanchor_119"><span class="label">119.</span></a> The caul.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_120" id="Footnote_120"></a><a href="#FNanchor_120"><span class="label">120.</span></a> Money-seeking.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_121" id="Footnote_121"></a><a href="#FNanchor_121"><span class="label">121.</span></a> Cacus stole some of Hercules’ oxen, and drew them into his cave +backward to prevent any traces being discovered. Ovid Fast, 1. 554.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_122" id="Footnote_122"></a><a href="#FNanchor_122"><span class="label">122.</span></a> Narrow, like walking on a rope.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_123" id="Footnote_123"></a><a href="#FNanchor_123"><span class="label">123.</span></a> A Greek philosophical writer. This Πιναξ is a representation +of a table where the whole human life with its dangers and temptations +is symbolically represented.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_124" id="Footnote_124"></a><a href="#FNanchor_124"><span class="label">124.</span></a> Picture.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_125" id="Footnote_125"></a><a href="#FNanchor_125"><span class="label">125.</span></a> The course taken by the Spanish Treasure ships. See Anson Voyages.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_126" id="Footnote_126"></a><a href="#FNanchor_126"><span class="label">126.</span></a> A recommencement.</p> + +<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry"><div class="stanza"> + <div class="verse indent14">“Dulcique senex vicinus Hymetto</div> + <div class="verse">Qui partem acceptæ sava inter vincla cicutæ</div> + <div class="verse">Accusatori nollet dare,”—Juv. Sat. xiii. 185.</div> +</div></div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"> +<p><a name="Footnote_127" id="Footnote_127"></a><a href="#FNanchor_127"><span class="label">127.</span></a> A small revolution made by one planet in the orbit of another.</p></div> + + + + +<p class="center small p4">BALLANTYNE AND COMPANY, PRINTERS, EDINBURGH.</p> + +<hr class="tb" /> + +<div class="footnotes"> + +<h2 class="nobreak">FOOTNOTES.</h2> + + + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_I._1" id="Footnote_I._1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_I._1"><span class="label">[I.]</span></a> A church-bell, that tolls every day at six and twelve of +the clock; at the hearing whereof every one, in what place +soever, either of house or street, betakes himself to his prayer, +which is commonly directed to the Virgin.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_II._2" id="Footnote_II._2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_II._2"><span class="label">[II.]</span></a> A revolution of certain thousand years, when all things +should return unto their former estate, and he be teaching +again in his school, as when he delivered this opinion.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_III._3" id="Footnote_III._3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_III._3"><span class="label">[III.]</span></a> “Sphæra cujus centrum ubique, circumferentia nullibi.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_IV._4" id="Footnote_IV._4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_IV._4"><span class="label">[IV.]</span></a> “Γνῶθι σεαυτὸν.” “Nosce teipsum.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_V._5" id="Footnote_V._5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_V._5"><span class="label">[V.]</span></a> “Post mortem nihil est, ipsaque mors nihil, mors individua +est noxia corpori, nec patiens animæ. . . . Toti morimur +nullaque pars manet nostri.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_VI._6" id="Footnote_VI._6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_VI._6"><span class="label">[VI.]</span></a> In Rabelais.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_VII._7" id="Footnote_VII._7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_VII._7"><span class="label">[VII.]</span></a> Pineda, in his “Monarchia Ecclesiastica,” quotes one +thousand and forty authors.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_VIII._8" id="Footnote_VIII._8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_VIII._8"><span class="label">[VIII.]</span></a> In his oracle to Augustus.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_IX._9" id="Footnote_IX._9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_IX._9"><span class="label">[IX.]</span></a> Thereby is meant our good angel, appointed us from our +nativity.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_X._10" id="Footnote_X._10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_X._10"><span class="label">[X.]</span></a> Who willed his friend not to bury him, but to hang him +up with a staff in his hand, to fright away the crows.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XI._11" id="Footnote_XI._11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XI._11"><span class="label">[XI.]</span></a> “Pharsalia,” vii. 819.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XII._12" id="Footnote_XII._12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XII._12"><span class="label">[XII.]</span></a> <i>Ep.</i> lib. xxiv. ep. 24.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XIII._13" id="Footnote_XIII._13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XIII._13"><span class="label">[XIII.]</span></a> <i>Pharsalia</i>, iv. 519.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XIV._14" id="Footnote_XIV._14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XIV._14"><span class="label">[XIV.]</span></a> <i>Pharsalia</i>, vii. 814.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XV._15" id="Footnote_XV._15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XV._15"><span class="label">[XV.]</span></a> “In those days there shall come liars and false prophets.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XVI._16" id="Footnote_XVI._16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XVI._16"><span class="label">[XVI.]</span></a> “Urbem Romam in principio reges habuere.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XVII._17" id="Footnote_XVII._17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XVII._17"><span class="label">[XVII.]</span></a> “In qua me non inficior mediocriter esse.”—<i>Pro Archia +Poeta</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XVIII._18" id="Footnote_XVIII._18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XVIII._18"><span class="label">[XVIII.]</span></a> “Cic. de Off.,” 1. iii.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XIX._19" id="Footnote_XIX._19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XIX._19"><span class="label">[XIX.]</span></a> “The poor ye have always with you.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XX._20" id="Footnote_XX._20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XX._20"><span class="label">[XX.]</span></a> Who holds that the sun is the centre of the world.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXI._21" id="Footnote_XXI._21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXI._21"><span class="label">[XXI.]</span></a> “Pompeios juvenes Asia atque Europa, sed ipsum terrâ +tegit Libyos.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXII._22" id="Footnote_XXII._22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXII._22"><span class="label">[XXII.]</span></a> Little directly but sea, between your house and Greenland.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXIII._23" id="Footnote_XXIII._23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXIII._23"><span class="label">[XXIII.]</span></a> Brought back by Cimon Plutarch.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXIV._24" id="Footnote_XXIV._24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXIV._24"><span class="label">[XXIV.]</span></a> The great urns at the Hippodrome at Rome, conceived to +resound the voices of people at their shows.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXV._25" id="Footnote_XXV._25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXV._25"><span class="label">[XXV.]</span></a> “Abiit ad plures.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXVI._26" id="Footnote_XXVI._26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXVI._26"><span class="label">[XXVI.]</span></a> Which makes the world so many years old.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXVII._27" id="Footnote_XXVII._27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXVII._27"><span class="label">[XXVII.]</span></a> In the time of Henry the Second.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXVIII._28" id="Footnote_XXVIII._28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXVIII._28"><span class="label">[XXVIII.]</span></a> “Adamas de rupe veteri præstantissimus.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXIX._29" id="Footnote_XXIX._29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXIX._29"><span class="label">[XXIX.]</span></a> The rich mountain of Peru.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXX._30" id="Footnote_XXX._30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXX._30"><span class="label">[XXX.]</span></a> Gumbrates, king of Chionia, a country near Persia.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXI._31" id="Footnote_XXXI._31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXI._31"><span class="label">[XXXI.]</span></a> XII. Tabulæ, part i., de jure sacro, “Hominem mortuum +in urbe ne sepelito neve urito.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXII._32" id="Footnote_XXXII._32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXII._32"><span class="label">[XXXII.]</span></a> “Ultima prolata subdita flamma rogo,” &c. <i>Fast.</i>, lib. +iv., 856.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXIII._33" id="Footnote_XXXIII._33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXIII._33"><span class="label">[XXXIII.]</span></a> And therefore the inscription on his tomb was made accordingly, +“Hic Damase.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXIV._34" id="Footnote_XXXIV._34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXIV._34"><span class="label">[XXXIV.]</span></a> Which Magius reads ἐξαπόλωλε.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXV._35" id="Footnote_XXXV._35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXV._35"><span class="label">[XXXV.]</span></a> Martialis the Bishop.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXVI._36" id="Footnote_XXXVI._36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXVI._36"><span class="label">[XXXVI.]</span></a> Amos vi. 10.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXVII._37" id="Footnote_XXXVII._37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXVII._37"><span class="label">[XXXVII.]</span></a> As in that magnificent sepulchral monument erected by +Simon.—1 <i>Macc.</i> xiii.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXVIII._38" id="Footnote_XXXVIII._38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXVIII._38"><span class="label">[XXXVIII.]</span></a> κατασκεύασμα θαυμασίως πεποιημένον, whereof a Jewish +priest had always custody until Josephus’ days.—<i>Jos. Antiq.</i>, +lib. x.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XXXIX._39" id="Footnote_XXXIX._39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XXXIX._39"><span class="label">[XXXIX.]</span></a> “Hominum infinita multitudo est creberrimaque; ædificia +fere Gallicis consimilia.”—<i>Cæsar de Bello. Gal.</i>, lib. v.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XL._40" id="Footnote_XL._40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XL._40"><span class="label">[XL.]</span></a> “<i>Execrantur rogos, et damnant ignium sepulturam.</i>”—<i>Min. +in Oct.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLI._41" id="Footnote_XLI._41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLI._41"><span class="label">[XLI.]</span></a> In Cheshire.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLII._42" id="Footnote_XLII._42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLII._42"><span class="label">[XLII.]</span></a> In Norfolk.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLIII._43" id="Footnote_XLIII._43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLIII._43"><span class="label">[XLIII.]</span></a> St Matt. xxiii.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLIV._44" id="Footnote_XLIV._44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLIV._44"><span class="label">[XLIV.]</span></a> <i>Euripides.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLV._45" id="Footnote_XLV._45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLV._45"><span class="label">[XLV.]</span></a> Psal. lxiii.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLVI._46" id="Footnote_XLVI._46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLVI._46"><span class="label">[XLVI.]</span></a> “Χωρήσεις τὸν ἄνθρωπον, ὂν ἡ οἰκουμένη οὐκ ἐχώρησεν.”—<i>Dion.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLVII._47" id="Footnote_XLVII._47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLVII._47"><span class="label">[XLVII.]</span></a> “Cum lacrymis posuere.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLVIII._48" id="Footnote_XLVIII._48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLVIII._48"><span class="label">[XLVIII.]</span></a> About five hundred years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XLIX._49" id="Footnote_XLIX._49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XLIX._49"><span class="label">[XLIX.]</span></a> “Vinum Opiminianum annorum centum.”—<i>Petron.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_L._50" id="Footnote_L._50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_L._50"><span class="label">[L.]</span></a> “In amphitheatro semiustulandum.”—<i>Suetonius Vit. +Tib.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LI._51" id="Footnote_LI._51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LI._51"><span class="label">[LI.]</span></a> “Sic erimus cuncti, ... ergo dum vivimus vivamus.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LII._52" id="Footnote_LII._52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LII._52"><span class="label">[LII.]</span></a> Αγώνον παίζειν. A barbarous pastime at feasts, when +men stood upon a rolling globe, with their necks in a rope and +a knife in their hands, ready to cut it when the stone was +rolled away, wherein, if they failed, they lost their lives, to +the laughter of their spectators.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LIII._53" id="Footnote_LIII._53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LIII._53"><span class="label">[LIII.]</span></a> Diis manibus.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LIV._54" id="Footnote_LIV._54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LIV._54"><span class="label">[LIV.]</span></a> “Ἑκατόμπεδον ἔνθα ἢ ἔνθα.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LV._55" id="Footnote_LV._55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LV._55"><span class="label">[LV.]</span></a> The Brain. <i>Hippocrates</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LVI._56" id="Footnote_LVI._56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LVI._56"><span class="label">[LVI.]</span></a> Amos ii. 1.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LVII._57" id="Footnote_LVII._57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LVII._57"><span class="label">[LVII.]</span></a> As Artemisia of her husband Mausolus.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LVIII._58" id="Footnote_LVIII._58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LVIII._58"><span class="label">[LVIII.]</span></a> Siste, viator.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LIX._59" id="Footnote_LIX._59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LIX._59"><span class="label">[LIX.]</span></a> Who was buried in 1530, and dug up in 1608, and found +perfect like an ordinary corpse newly interred.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LX._60" id="Footnote_LX._60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LX._60"><span class="label">[LX.]</span></a> Purgat. xxiii. 31.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXI._61" id="Footnote_LXI._61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXI._61"><span class="label">[LXI.]</span></a> “<i>Similis **** reviviscendi promissa Democrito vanitas, +qui non revixit ipse. Quæ (malum) ista dementia est iterari +vitam morte?</i>”—Plin. l. vii. c. 55.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXII._62" id="Footnote_LXII._62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXII._62"><span class="label">[LXII.]</span></a> “Καὶ τάχα δ᾽ἐκ γαίης ἐλπίζομεν ἐς φάος ἐλθεῖν λεῖψαν ἀποιχομένων.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXIII._63" id="Footnote_LXIII._63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXIII._63"><span class="label">[LXIII.]</span></a> “Cedit item retro de terra quod fuit ante in terras.”—<i>Luc.</i>, +lib. ii. 998.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXIV._64" id="Footnote_LXIV._64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXIV._64"><span class="label">[LXIV.]</span></a> “Vale, vale, nos te ordine quo natura permittet sequamur.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXV._65" id="Footnote_LXV._65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXV._65"><span class="label">[LXV.]</span></a> “Tu manes ne lœde meos.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXVI._66" id="Footnote_LXVI._66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXVI._66"><span class="label">[LXVI.]</span></a> The Russians, &c.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXVII._67" id="Footnote_LXVII._67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXVII._67"><span class="label">[LXVII.]</span></a> <i>Del Inferno</i>, cant. 4.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXVIII._68" id="Footnote_LXVIII._68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXVIII._68"><span class="label">[LXVIII.]</span></a> <i>Tibullus</i>, lib. iii. el. 2, 26.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXIX._69" id="Footnote_LXIX._69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXIX._69"><span class="label">[LXIX.]</span></a> According to the ancient arithmetick of the hand, wherein +the little finger of the right hand contracted, signified an +hundred.—<i>Pierius in Hieroglyph.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXX._70" id="Footnote_LXX._70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXX._70"><span class="label">[LXX.]</span></a> One night as long as three.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXI._71" id="Footnote_LXXI._71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXI._71"><span class="label">[LXXI.]</span></a> The puzzling questions of Tiberius unto grammarians.—<i>Marcel.</i> +<i>Donatus in Suet.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXII._72" id="Footnote_LXXII._72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXII._72"><span class="label">[LXXII.]</span></a> That the world may last but six thousand years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXIII._73" id="Footnote_LXXIII._73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXIII._73"><span class="label">[LXXIII.]</span></a> Hector’s fame outlasting above two lives of Methuselah +before that famous prince was extant.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXIV._74" id="Footnote_LXXIV._74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXIV._74"><span class="label">[LXXIV.]</span></a> The character of death.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXV._75" id="Footnote_LXXV._75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXV._75"><span class="label">[LXXV.]</span></a> “Cuperem notum esse quod sim non opto ut sciatur +qualis sim.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXVI._76" id="Footnote_LXXVI._76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXVI._76"><span class="label">[LXXVI.]</span></a> Isa. xiv. 16.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXVII._77" id="Footnote_LXXVII._77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXVII._77"><span class="label">[LXXVII.]</span></a> The least of angles.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXVIII._78" id="Footnote_LXXVIII._78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXVIII._78"><span class="label">[LXXVIII.]</span></a> In Paris, where bodies soon consume.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXIX._79" id="Footnote_LXXIX._79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXIX._79"><span class="label">[LXXIX.]</span></a> A stately mausoleum or sepulchral pile, built by Adrianus +in Rome, where now standeth the castle of St Angelo.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXX._80" id="Footnote_LXXX._80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXX._80"><span class="label">[LXXX.]</span></a> “Cum mors venerit, in medio Tibure Sardinia est.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXI._81" id="Footnote_LXXXI._81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXI._81"><span class="label">[LXXXI.]</span></a> In the king’s forests they set the figure of a broad arrow +upon trees that are to be cut down.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXII._82" id="Footnote_LXXXII._82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXII._82"><span class="label">[LXXXII.]</span></a> <i>Bellonius de Avibus.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXIII._83" id="Footnote_LXXXIII._83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXIII._83"><span class="label">[LXXXIII.]</span></a> “Monstra contingunt in medicina.” <i>Hippoc.</i>—“Strange +and rare escapes there happen sometimes in physick.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXIV._84" id="Footnote_LXXXIV._84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXIV._84"><span class="label">[LXXXIV.]</span></a> Matt. iv. 23.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXV._85" id="Footnote_LXXXV._85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXV._85"><span class="label">[LXXXV.]</span></a> “Aristoteles nullum animal nisi æstu recedente expirare +affirmat; observatum id multum in Gallico Oceano et duntaxat +in homine compertum,” lib. 2, cap. 101.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXVI._86" id="Footnote_LXXXVI._86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXVI._86"><span class="label">[LXXXVI.]</span></a> “Auris pars pendula lobus dicitur, non omnibus ea pars, +est auribus; non enim iis qui noctu sunt, sed qui interdiu, +maxima ex parte.”—<i>Com. in Aristot. de Animal.</i> lib. 1.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXVII._87" id="Footnote_LXXXVII._87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXVII._87"><span class="label">[LXXXVII.]</span></a> According to the Egyptian hieroglyphic.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXVIII._88" id="Footnote_LXXXVIII._88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXVIII._88"><span class="label">[LXXXVIII.]</span></a> Turkish history.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_LXXXIX._89" id="Footnote_LXXXIX._89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_LXXXIX._89"><span class="label">[LXXXIX.]</span></a> In the poet Dante’s description.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XC._90" id="Footnote_XC._90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XC._90"><span class="label">[XC.]</span></a> i.e. “by six persons.”</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCI._91" id="Footnote_XCI._91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCI._91"><span class="label">[XCI.]</span></a> Morta, the deity of death or fate.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCII._92" id="Footnote_XCII._92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCII._92"><span class="label">[XCII.]</span></a> When men’s faces are drawn with resemblance to some +other animals, the Italians call it, to be drawn <i>in caricatura</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCIII._93" id="Footnote_XCIII._93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCIII._93"><span class="label">[XCIII.]</span></a> <i>Ulmus de usu barbæ humanæ.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCIV._94" id="Footnote_XCIV._94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCIV._94"><span class="label">[XCIV.]</span></a> The life of man is threescore and ten.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCV._95" id="Footnote_XCV._95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCV._95"><span class="label">[XCV.]</span></a> See <i>Picotus de Rheumatismo</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCVI._96" id="Footnote_XCVI._96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCVI._96"><span class="label">[XCVI.]</span></a> His upper jaw being solid, and without distinct rows of teeth.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCVII._97" id="Footnote_XCVII._97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCVII._97"><span class="label">[XCVII.]</span></a> Twice tell over his teeth, never live to threescore years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCVIII._98" id="Footnote_XCVIII._98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCVIII._98"><span class="label">[XCVIII.]</span></a> Ασφαλέστατος καὶ ῥήϊστος, securissima et facillima.—<i>Hippoc.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_XCIX._99" id="Footnote_XCIX._99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_XCIX._99"><span class="label">[XCIX.]</span></a> Pro febre quartana raro sonat campana.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_C._100" id="Footnote_C._100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_C._100"><span class="label">[C.]</span></a> Cardan in his <i>Encomium Podagrae</i> reckoneth this among +the <i>Dona Podagræ</i>, that they are delivered thereby from the +phthisis and stone in the bladder.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CI._101" id="Footnote_CI._101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CI._101"><span class="label">[CI.]</span></a> Hippoc, <i>de Insomniis</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CII._102" id="Footnote_CII._102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CII._102"><span class="label">[CII.]</span></a> Tabes maxime contingunt ab anno decimo octavo and trigesi +mum quintum.—<i>Hippoc.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CIII._103" id="Footnote_CIII._103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CIII._103"><span class="label">[CIII.]</span></a> A sound child cut out of the body of the mother.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CIV._104" id="Footnote_CIV._104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CIV._104"><span class="label">[CIV.]</span></a> Natos ad flumina primum deferimus sævoque gelu dura +mus et undis.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CV._105" id="Footnote_CV._105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CV._105"><span class="label">[CV.]</span></a> Julii Cæsaris Scaligeri quod fuit.—<i>Joseph. Scaliger in vita +patris.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CVI._106" id="Footnote_CVI._106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CVI._106"><span class="label">[CVI.]</span></a> Summum nec metuas diem nec optes.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CVII._107" id="Footnote_CVII._107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CVII._107"><span class="label">[CVII.]</span></a> Who upon some accounts, and tradition, is said to have +lived thirty years after he was raised by our Saviour.—<i>Baronius.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CVIII._108" id="Footnote_CVIII._108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CVIII._108"><span class="label">[CVIII.]</span></a> In the speech of Vulteius in Lucan, animating his soldiers +in a great struggle to kill one another.—“Decernite letum, +et metus omnis abest, cupias quodcumque necesse est.” “All +fear is over, do but resolve to die, and make your desires meet +necessity.”—<i>Phars.</i> iv. 486.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CIX._109" id="Footnote_CIX._109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CIX._109"><span class="label">[CIX.]</span></a> Wisdom, cap. iv.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CX._110" id="Footnote_CX._110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CX._110"><span class="label">[CX.]</span></a> Through the Pacifick Sea with a constant gale from the east.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXI._111" id="Footnote_CXI._111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXI._111"><span class="label">[CXI.]</span></a> Who is said to have castrated himself.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXII._112" id="Footnote_CXII._112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXII._112"><span class="label">[CXII.]</span></a> Iræ furor brevis est.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXIII._113" id="Footnote_CXIII._113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXIII._113"><span class="label">[CXIII.]</span></a> See Aristotle’s Ethics, chapter Magnanimity.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXIV._114" id="Footnote_CXIV._114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXIV._114"><span class="label">[CXIV.]</span></a> Holy, holy, holy.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXV._115" id="Footnote_CXV._115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXV._115"><span class="label">[CXV.]</span></a> Even when the days are shortest.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXVI._116" id="Footnote_CXVI._116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXVI._116"><span class="label">[CXVI.]</span></a> Alluding to the tower of oblivion, mentioned by Procopius, +which was the name of a tower of imprisonment among +the Persians; whoever was put therein was as it were buried +alive, and it was death for any but to name him.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXVII._117" id="Footnote_CXVII._117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXVII._117"><span class="label">[CXVII.]</span></a> St Matt. xi.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"> + +<p><a name="Footnote_CXVIII._118" id="Footnote_CXVIII._118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_CXVIII._118"><span class="label">[CXVIII.]</span></a> Ovation, a petty and minor kind of triumph.</p></div> +</div> + +<hr class="full" /> + +<div class="transnote"> + +<p class="large center"><a id="Transcribers_Note"></a>Transcriber's Note</p> + +<p>The following errata have been corrected:</p> + +<ul><li>p. viii "coffer of gold." changed to "coffer of gold.”"</li> + +<li>p. 31 "Bevis." missing endnote anchor inserted and following anchor renumbered</li> + +<li>p. 32 "Pantagruel's library," extraneous endnote anchor removed</li> + +<li>p. 56 "comtemplations." changed to "contemplations."</li> + +<li>p. 93 "that si" changed to "that is"</li> + +<li>p. 117 "Egyptains" changed to "Egyptians"</li> + +<li>p. 120 "Egyptains" changed to "Egyptians"</li> + +<li>p. 148 "aprehension" changed to "apprehension"</li> + +<li>p. 162 "viii 809" changed to "viii. 809"</li> + +<li>p. 176 "limped" changed to "limpid"</li> + +<li>p. 180 (note) "Decernite lethum" changed to "Decernite letum"</li> + +<li>p. 180 (note) "quodcunqne" changed to "quodcumque"</li> + +<li>p. 186 "Socrates," extraneous endnote anchor removed</li> + +<li>p. 187 "all things.’" changed to "all things.”"</li></ul> + + +</div> + + + + + + + + +<pre> + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Religio Medici, Hydriotaphia, and the +Letter to a Friend, by Thomas Browne + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RELIGIO MEDICI *** + +***** This file should be named 586-h.htm or 586-h.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + http://www.gutenberg.org/5/8/586/ + +Produced by Henry Flower and Judith Boss, Omaha, Nebraska + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will +be renamed. + +Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright +law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, +so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United +States without permission and without paying copyright +royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part +of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm +concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, +and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive +specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this +eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook +for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, +performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given +away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks +not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the +trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. + +START: FULL LICENSE + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full +Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at +www.gutenberg.org/license. + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or +destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your +possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a +Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound +by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the +person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph +1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this +agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the +Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection +of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual +works in the collection are in the public domain in the United +States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the +United States and you are located in the United States, we do not +claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, +displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as +all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope +that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting +free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm +works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the +Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily +comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the +same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when +you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are +in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, +check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this +agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, +distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any +other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no +representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any +country outside the United States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other +immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear +prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work +on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, +performed, viewed, copied or distributed: + + This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and + most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no + restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it + under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this + eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the + United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you + are located before using this ebook. + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is +derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not +contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the +copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in +the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are +redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply +either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or +obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm +trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any +additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms +will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works +posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the +beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including +any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access +to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format +other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official +version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site +(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense +to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means +of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain +Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the +full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +provided that + +* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed + to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has + agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project + Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid + within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are + legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty + payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project + Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in + Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg + Literary Archive Foundation." + +* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all + copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue + all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm + works. + +* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of + any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of + receipt of the work. + +* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than +are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing +from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The +Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm +trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project +Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may +contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate +or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other +intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or +other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or +cannot be read by your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium +with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you +with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in +lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person +or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second +opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If +the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing +without further opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO +OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT +LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of +damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement +violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the +agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or +limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or +unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the +remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in +accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the +production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, +including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of +the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this +or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or +additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any +Defect you cause. + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of +computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It +exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations +from people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future +generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see +Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at +www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by +U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the +mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its +volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous +locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt +Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to +date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and +official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact + +For additional contact information: + + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND +DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular +state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To +donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project +Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be +freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and +distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of +volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in +the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not +necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper +edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search +facility: www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + + + +</pre> + +</body> +</html> diff --git a/586-h/images/cover.jpg b/586-h/images/cover.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b988c71 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/cover.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_005_1.png b/586-h/images/zill_005_1.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..a8a397b --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_005_1.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_005_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_005_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..0bbe5c3 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_005_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_009.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_009.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..faf12e8 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_009.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_011_1.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_011_1.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..e296b5b --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_011_1.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_011_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_011_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..49327a9 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_011_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_020.png b/586-h/images/zill_020.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..d1127f6 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_020.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_021_1.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_021_1.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..af99d4d --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_021_1.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_021_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_021_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..ce56434 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_021_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_023.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_023.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..c6fac7a --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_023.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_025_1.png b/586-h/images/zill_025_1.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7bd5db --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_025_1.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_025_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_025_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..13acc9b --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_025_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_125.png b/586-h/images/zill_125.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..ba7a4bb --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_125.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_127_1.png b/586-h/images/zill_127_1.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..415a5d2 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_127_1.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_127_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_127_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..d11a19b --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_127_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_129_1.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_129_1.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..a15f569 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_129_1.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_129_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_129_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..cbff7d6 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_129_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_132.png b/586-h/images/zill_132.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..1620f46 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_132.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_133_1.jpg b/586-h/images/zill_133_1.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..143e179 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_133_1.jpg diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_133_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_133_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b8c36cd --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_133_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_182.png b/586-h/images/zill_182.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b1f66d2 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_182.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_183_1.png b/586-h/images/zill_183_1.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..154ae77 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_183_1.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_183_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_183_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..14f1b56 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_183_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_185_1.png b/586-h/images/zill_185_1.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..52366b6 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_185_1.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_185_2.png b/586-h/images/zill_185_2.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..97ac313 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_185_2.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_210.png b/586-h/images/zill_210.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..6e76ddf --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_210.png diff --git a/586-h/images/zill_211.png b/586-h/images/zill_211.png Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..cf76b24 --- /dev/null +++ b/586-h/images/zill_211.png |
